Before the Curtain
*
As the manager of the Performance sits
before the curtain on the boards and looks into the Fair, a feeling
of profound melancholy comes over him in his survey of the bustling
place. There is a great quantity of eating and drinking, making love
and jilting, laughing and the contrary, smoking, cheating, fighting,
dancing and fiddling; there are bullies pushing about, bucks ogling
the women, knaves picking pockets, policemen on the look-out, quacks
(OTHER quacks, plague take them!) bawling in front of their booths,
and yokels looking up at the tinselled dancers and poor old rouged
tumblers, while the light-fingered folk are operating upon their
pockets behind. Yes, this is VANITY FAIR; not a moral place
certainly; nor a merry one, though very noisy. Look at the faces of
the actors and buffoons when they come off from their business; and
Tom Fool washing the paint off his cheeks before he sits down to
dinner with his wife and the little Jack Puddings behind the canvas.
The curtain will be up presently, and he will be turning over head
and heels, and crying, "How are you?"
A man with a reflective turn of mind,
walking through an exhibition of this sort, will not be oppressed, I
take it, by his own or other people's hilarity. An episode of humour
or kindness touches and amuses him here and there—a pretty child
looking at a gingerbread stall; a pretty girl blushing whilst her
lover talks to her and chooses her fairing; poor Tom Fool, yonder
behind the waggon, mumbling his bone with the honest family which
lives by his tumbling; but the general impression is one more
melancholy than mirthful. When you come home you sit down in a sober,
contemplative, not uncharitable frame of mind, and apply yourself to
your books or your business.
I have no other moral than this to tag
to the present story of "Vanity Fair." Some people consider
Fairs immoral altogether, and eschew such, with their servants and
families: very likely they are right. But persons who think
otherwise, and are of a lazy, or a benevolent, or a sarcastic mood,
may perhaps like to step in for half an hour, and look at the
performances. There are scenes of all sorts; some dreadful combats,
some grand and lofty horse-riding, some scenes of high life, and some
of very middling indeed; some love-making for the sentimental, and
some light comic business; the whole accompanied by appropriate
scenery and brilliantly illuminated with the Author's own candles.
What more has the Manager of the
Performance to say?—To acknowledge the kindness with which it has
been received in all the principal towns of England through which the
Show has passed, and where it has been most favourably noticed by the
respected conductors of the public Press, and by the Nobility and
Gentry. He is proud to think that his Puppets have given satisfaction
to the very best company in this empire. The famous little Becky
Puppet has been pronounced to be uncommonly flexible in the joints,
and lively on the wire; the Amelia Doll, though it has had a smaller
circle of admirers, has yet been carved and dressed with the greatest
care by the artist; the Dobbin Figure, though apparently clumsy, yet
dances in a very amusing and natural manner; the Little Boys' Dance
has been liked by some; and please to remark the richly dressed
figure of the Wicked Nobleman, on which no expense has been spared,
and which Old Nick will fetch away at the end of this singular
performance.
And with this, and a profound bow to
his patrons, the Manager retires, and the curtain rises.
LONDON, June 28, 1848
Chapter I
*
Chiswick Mall
While the present century was in its
teens, and on one sunshiny morning in June, there drove up to the
great iron gate of Miss Pinkerton's academy for young ladies, on
Chiswick Mall, a large family coach, with two fat horses in blazing
harness, driven by a fat coachman in a three-cornered hat and wig, at
the rate of four miles an hour. A black servant, who reposed on the
box beside the fat coachman, uncurled his bandy legs as soon as the
equipage drew up opposite Miss Pinkerton's shining brass plate, and
as he pulled the bell at least a score of young heads were seen
peering out of the narrow windows of the stately old brick house.
Nay, the acute observer might have recognized the little red nose of
good-natured Miss Jemima Pinkerton herself, rising over some geranium
pots in the window of that lady's own drawing-room.
"It is Mrs. Sedley's coach,
sister," said Miss Jemima. "Sambo, the black servant, has
just rung the bell; and the coachman has a new red waistcoat."
"Have you completed all the
necessary preparations incident to Miss Sedley's departure, Miss
Jemima?" asked Miss Pinkerton herself, that majestic lady; the
Semiramis of Hammersmith, the friend of Doctor Johnson, the
correspondent of Mrs. Chapone herself.
"The girls were up at four this
morning, packing her trunks, sister," replied Miss Jemima; "we
have made her a bow-pot."
"Say a bouquet, sister Jemima,
'tis more genteel."
"Well, a booky as big almost as a
haystack; I have put up two bottles of the gillyflower water for Mrs.
Sedley, and the receipt for making it, in Amelia's box."
"And I trust, Miss Jemima, you
have made a copy of Miss Sedley's account. This is it, is it? Very
good—ninety-three pounds, four shillings. Be kind enough to address
it to John Sedley, Esquire, and to seal this billet which I have
written to his lady."
In Miss Jemima's eyes an autograph
letter of her sister, Miss Pinkerton, was an object of as deep
veneration as would have been a letter from a sovereign. Only when
her pupils quitted the establishment, or when they were about to be
married, and once, when poor Miss Birch died of the scarlet fever,
was Miss Pinkerton known to write personally to the parents of her
pupils; and it was Jemima's opinion that if anything could console
Mrs. Birch for her daughter's loss, it would be that pious and
eloquent composition in which Miss Pinkerton announced the event.
In the present instance Miss
Pinkerton's "billet" was to the following effect:—
The Mall, Chiswick, June 15, 18
MADAM,—After her six years' residence
at the Mall, I have the honour and happiness of presenting Miss
Amelia Sedley to her parents, as a young lady not unworthy to occupy
a fitting position in their polished and refined circle. Those
virtues which characterize the young English gentlewoman, those
accomplishments which become her birth and station, will not be found
wanting in the amiable Miss Sedley, whose INDUSTRY and OBEDIENCE have
endeared her to her instructors, and whose delightful sweetness of
temper has charmed her AGED and her YOUTHFUL companions.
In music, in dancing, in orthography,
in every variety of embroidery and needlework, she will be found to
have realized her friends' fondest wishes. In geography there is
still much to be desired; and a careful and undeviating use of the
backboard, for four hours daily during the next three years, is
recommended as necessary to the acquirement of that dignified
DEPORTMENT AND CARRIAGE, so requisite for every young lady of
FASHION.
In the principles of religion and
morality, Miss Sedley will be found worthy of an establishment which
has been honoured by the presence of THE GREAT LEXICOGRAPHER, and the
patronage of the admirable Mrs. Chapone. In leaving the Mall, Miss
Amelia carries with her the hearts of her companions, and the
affectionate regards of her mistress, who has the honour to subscribe
herself,
Madam, Your most obliged humble
servant, BARBARA PINKERTON
P.S.—Miss Sharp accompanies Miss
Sedley. It is particularly requested that Miss Sharp's stay in
Russell Square may not exceed ten days. The family of distinction
with whom she is engaged, desire to avail themselves of her services
as soon as possible.
This letter completed, Miss Pinkerton
proceeded to write her own name, and Miss Sedley's, in the fly-leaf
of a Johnson's Dictionary— the interesting work which she
invariably presented to her scholars, on their departure from the
Mall. On the cover was inserted a copy of "Lines addressed to a
young lady on quitting Miss Pinkerton's school, at the Mall; by the
late revered Doctor Samuel Johnson." In fact, the
Lexicographer's name was always on the lips of this majestic woman,
and a visit he had paid to her was the cause of her reputation and
her fortune.
Being commanded by her elder sister to
get "the Dictionary" from the cupboard, Miss Jemima had
extracted two copies of the book from the receptacle in question.
When Miss Pinkerton had finished the inscription in the first,
Jemima, with rather a dubious and timid air, handed her the second.
"For whom is this, Miss Jemima?"
said Miss Pinkerton, with awful coldness.
"For Becky Sharp," answered
Jemima, trembling very much, and blushing over her withered face and
neck, as she turned her back on her sister. "For Becky Sharp:
she's going too."
"MISS JEMIMA!" exclaimed Miss
Pinkerton, in the largest capitals. "Are you in your senses?
Replace the Dixonary in the closet, and never venture to take such a
liberty in future."
"Well, sister, it's only
two-and-ninepence, and poor Becky will be miserable if she don't get
one."
"Send Miss Sedley instantly to
me," said Miss Pinkerton. And so venturing not to say another
word, poor Jemima trotted off, exceedingly flurried and nervous.
Miss Sedley's papa was a merchant in
London, and a man of some wealth; whereas Miss Sharp was an articled
pupil, for whom Miss Pinkerton had done, as she thought, quite
enough, without conferring upon her at parting the high honour of the
Dixonary.
Although schoolmistresses' letters are
to be trusted no more nor less than churchyard epitaphs; yet, as it
sometimes happens that a person departs this life who is really
deserving of all the praises the stone cutter carves over his bones;
who IS a good Christian, a good parent, child, wife, or husband; who
actually DOES leave a disconsolate family to mourn his loss; so in
academies of the male and female sex it occurs every now and then
that the pupil is fully worthy of the praises bestowed by the
disinterested instructor. Now, Miss Amelia Sedley was a young lady of
this singular species; and deserved not only all that Miss Pinkerton
said in her praise, but had many charming qualities which that
pompous old Minerva of a woman could not see, from the differences of
rank and age between her pupil and herself.
For she could not only sing like a
lark, or a Mrs. Billington, and dance like Hillisberg or Parisot; and
embroider beautifully; and spell as well as a Dixonary itself; but
she had such a kindly, smiling, tender, gentle, generous heart of her
own, as won the love of everybody who came near her, from Minerva
herself down to the poor girl in the scullery, and the one-eyed
tart-woman's daughter, who was permitted to vend her wares once a
week to the young ladies in the Mall. She had twelve intimate and
bosom friends out of the twenty-four young ladies. Even envious Miss
Briggs never spoke ill of her; high and mighty Miss Saltire (Lord
Dexter's granddaughter) allowed that her figure was genteel; and as
for Miss Swartz, the rich woolly-haired mulatto from St. Kitt's, on
the day Amelia went away, she was in such a passion of tears that
they were obliged to send for Dr. Floss, and half tipsify her with
salvolatile. Miss Pinkerton's attachment was, as may be supposed from
the high position and eminent virtues of that lady, calm and
dignified; but Miss Jemima had already whimpered several times at the
idea of Amelia's departure; and, but for fear of her sister, would
have gone off in downright hysterics, like the heiress (who paid
double) of St. Kitt's. Such luxury of grief, however, is only allowed
to parlour-boarders. Honest Jemima had all the bills, and the
washing, and the mending, and the puddings, and the plate and
crockery, and the servants to superintend. But why speak about her?
It is probable that we shall not hear of her again from this moment
to the end of time, and that when the great filigree iron gates are
once closed on her, she and her awful sister will never issue
therefrom into this little world of history.
But as we are to see a great deal of
Amelia, there is no harm in saying, at the outset of our
acquaintance, that she was a dear little creature; and a great mercy
it is, both in life and in novels, which (and the latter especially)
abound in villains of the most sombre sort, that we are to have for a
constant companion so guileless and good-natured a person. As she is
not a heroine, there is no need to describe her person; indeed I am
afraid that her nose was rather short than otherwise, and her cheeks
a great deal too round and red for a heroine; but her face blushed
with rosy health, and her lips with the freshest of smiles, and she
had a pair of eyes which sparkled with the brightest and honestest
good-humour, except indeed when they filled with tears, and that was
a great deal too often; for the silly thing would cry over a dead
canary-bird; or over a mouse, that the cat haply had seized upon; or
over the end of a novel, were it ever so stupid; and as for saying an
unkind word to her, were any persons hard-hearted enough to do
so—why, so much the worse for them. Even Miss Pinkerton, that
austere and godlike woman, ceased scolding her after the first time,
and though she no more comprehended sensibility than she did Algebra,
gave all masters and teachers particular orders to treat Miss Sedley
with the utmost gentleness, as harsh treatment was injurious to her.
So that when the day of departure came,
between her two customs of laughing and crying, Miss Sedley was
greatly puzzled how to act. She was glad to go home, and yet most
woefully sad at leaving school. For three days before, little Laura
Martin, the orphan, followed her about like a little dog. She had to
make and receive at least fourteen presents—to make fourteen solemn
promises of writing every week: "Send my letters under cover to
my grandpapa, the Earl of Dexter," said Miss Saltire (who, by
the way, was rather shabby). "Never mind the postage, but write
every day, you dear darling," said the impetuous and
woolly-headed, but generous and affectionate Miss Swartz; and the
orphan little Laura Martin (who was just in round-hand), took her
friend's hand and said, looking up in her face wistfully, "Amelia,
when I write to you I shall call you Mamma." All which details,
I have no doubt, JONES, who reads this book at his Club, will
pronounce to be excessively foolish, trivial, twaddling, and
ultra-sentimental. Yes; I can see Jones at this minute (rather
flushed with his joint of mutton and half pint of wine), taking out
his pencil and scoring under the words "foolish, twaddling,"
&c., and adding to them his own remark of "QUITE TRUE."
Well, he is a lofty man of genius, and admires the great and heroic
in life and novels; and so had better take warning and go elsewhere.
Well, then. The flowers, and the
presents, and the trunks, and bonnet-boxes of Miss Sedley having been
arranged by Mr. Sambo in the carriage, together with a very small and
weather-beaten old cow's- skin trunk with Miss Sharp's card neatly
nailed upon it, which was delivered by Sambo with a grin, and packed
by the coachman with a corresponding sneer—the hour for parting
came; and the grief of that moment was considerably lessened by the
admirable discourse which Miss Pinkerton addressed to her pupil. Not
that the parting speech caused Amelia to philosophise, or that it
armed her in any way with a calmness, the result of argument; but it
was intolerably dull, pompous, and tedious; and having the fear of
her schoolmistress greatly before her eyes, Miss Sedley did not
venture, in her presence, to give way to any ebullitions of private
grief. A seed-cake and a bottle of wine were produced in the
drawing-room, as on the solemn occasions of the visits of parents,
and these refreshments being partaken of, Miss Sedley was at liberty
to depart.
"You'll go in and say good-by to
Miss Pinkerton, Becky!" said Miss Jemima to a young lady of whom
nobody took any notice, and who was coming downstairs with her own
bandbox.
"I suppose I must," said Miss
Sharp calmly, and much to the wonder of Miss Jemima; and the latter
having knocked at the door, and receiving permission to come in, Miss
Sharp advanced in a very unconcerned manner, and said in French, and
with a perfect accent, "Mademoiselle, je viens vous faire mes
adieux."
Miss Pinkerton did not understand
French; she only directed those who did: but biting her lips and
throwing up her venerable and Roman-nosed head (on the top of which
figured a large and solemn turban), she said, "Miss Sharp, I
wish you a good morning." As the Hammersmith Semiramis spoke,
she waved one hand, both by way of adieu, and to give Miss Sharp an
opportunity of shaking one of the fingers of the hand which was left
out for that purpose.
Miss Sharp only folded her own hands
with a very frigid smile and bow, and quite declined to accept the
proffered honour; on which Semiramis tossed up her turban more
indignantly than ever. In fact, it was a little battle between the
young lady and the old one, and the latter was worsted. "Heaven
bless you, my child," said she, embracing Amelia, and scowling
the while over the girl's shoulder at Miss Sharp. "Come away,
Becky," said Miss Jemima, pulling the young woman away in great
alarm, and the drawing-room door closed upon them for ever.
Then came the struggle and parting
below. Words refuse to tell it. All the servants were there in the
hall—all the dear friend—all the young ladies—the
dancing-master who had just arrived; and there was such a scuffling,
and hugging, and kissing, and crying, with the hysterical YOOPS of
Miss Swartz, the parlour-boarder, from her room, as no pen can
depict, and as the tender heart would fain pass over. The embracing
was over; they parted—that is, Miss Sedley parted from her friends.
Miss Sharp had demurely entered the carriage some minutes before.
Nobody cried for leaving HER.
Sambo of the bandy legs slammed the
carriage door on his young weeping mistress. He sprang up behind the
carriage. "Stop!" cried Miss Jemima, rushing to the gate
with a parcel.
"It's some sandwiches, my dear,"
said she to Amelia. "You may be hungry, you know; and Becky,
Becky Sharp, here's a book for you that my sister—that is,
I—Johnson's Dixonary, you know; you mustn't leave us without that.
Good-by. Drive on, coachman. God bless you!"
And the kind creature retreated into
the garden, overcome with emotion.
But, lo! and just as the coach drove
off, Miss Sharp put her pale face out of the window and actually
flung the book back into the garden.
This almost caused Jemima to faint with
terror. "Well, I never"— said she—"what an
audacious"—Emotion prevented her from completing either
sentence. The carriage rolled away; the great gates were closed; the
bell rang for the dancing lesson. The world is before the two young
ladies; and so, farewell to Chiswick Mall.
Chapter II
*
In Which Miss Sharp and Miss Sedley
Prepare to Open the Campaign
When Miss Sharp had performed the
heroical act mentioned in the last chapter, and had seen the
Dixonary, flying over the pavement of the little garden, fall at
length at the feet of the astonished Miss Jemima, the young lady's
countenance, which had before worn an almost livid look of hatred,
assumed a smile that perhaps was scarcely more agreeable, and she
sank back in the carriage in an easy frame of mind, saying—"So
much for the Dixonary; and, thank God, I'm out of Chiswick."
Miss Sedley was almost as flurried at
the act of defiance as Miss Jemima had been; for, consider, it was
but one minute that she had left school, and the impressions of six
years are not got over in that space of time. Nay, with some persons
those awes and terrors of youth last for ever and ever. I know, for
instance, an old gentleman of sixty-eight, who said to me one morning
at breakfast, with a very agitated countenance, "I dreamed last
night that I was flogged by Dr. Raine." Fancy had carried him
back five-and-fifty years in the course of that evening. Dr. Raine
and his rod were just as awful to him in his heart, then, at
sixty-eight, as they had been at thirteen. If the Doctor, with a
large birch, had appeared bodily to him, even at the age of
threescore and eight, and had said in awful voice, "Boy, take
down your pant—"? Well, well, Miss Sedley was exceedingly
alarmed at this act of insubordination.
"How could you do so, Rebecca?"
at last she said, after a pause.
"Why, do you think Miss Pinkerton
will come out and order me back to the black-hole?" said
Rebecca, laughing.
"No: but—"
"I hate the whole house,"
continued Miss Sharp in a fury. "I hope I may never set eyes on
it again. I wish it were in the bottom of the Thames, I do; and if
Miss Pinkerton were there, I wouldn't pick her out, that I wouldn't.
O how I should like to see her floating in the water yonder, turban
and all, with her train streaming after her, and her nose like the
beak of a wherry."
"Hush!" cried Miss Sedley.
"Why, will the black footman tell
tales?" cried Miss Rebecca, laughing. "He may go back and
tell Miss Pinkerton that I hate her with all my soul; and I wish he
would; and I wish I had a means of proving it, too. For two years I
have only had insults and outrage from her. I have been treated worse
than any servant in the kitchen. I have never had a friend or a kind
word, except from you. I have been made to tend the little girls in
the lower schoolroom, and to talk French to the Misses, until I grew
sick of my mother tongue. But that talking French to Miss Pinkerton
was capital fun, wasn't it? She doesn't know a word of French, and
was too proud to confess it. I believe it was that which made her
part with me; and so thank Heaven for French. Vive la France! Vive
l'Empereur! Vive Bonaparte!"
"O Rebecca, Rebecca, for shame!"
cried Miss Sedley; for this was the greatest blasphemy Rebecca had as
yet uttered; and in those days, in England, to say, "Long live
Bonaparte!" was as much as to say, "Long live Lucifer!"
"How can you—how dare you have such wicked, revengeful
thoughts?"
"Revenge may be wicked, but it's
natural," answered Miss Rebecca. "I'm no angel." And,
to say the truth, she certainly was not.
For it may be remarked in the course of
this little conversation (which took place as the coach rolled along
lazily by the river side) that though Miss Rebecca Sharp has twice
had occasion to thank Heaven, it has been, in the first place, for
ridding her of some person whom she hated, and secondly, for enabling
her to bring her enemies to some sort of perplexity or confusion;
neither of which are very amiable motives for religious gratitude, or
such as would be put forward by persons of a kind and placable
disposition. Miss Rebecca was not, then, in the least kind or
placable. All the world used her ill, said this young misanthropist,
and we may be pretty certain that persons whom all the world treats
ill, deserve entirely the treatment they get. The world is a
looking-glass, and gives back to every man the reflection of his own
face. Frown at it, and it will in turn look sourly upon you; laugh at
it and with it, and it is a jolly kind companion; and so let all
young persons take their choice. This is certain, that if the world
neglected Miss Sharp, she never was known to have done a good action
in behalf of anybody; nor can it be expected that twenty-four young
ladies should all be as amiable as the heroine of this work, Miss
Sedley (whom we have selected for the very reason that she was the
best-natured of all, otherwise what on earth was to have prevented us
from putting up Miss Swartz, or Miss Crump, or Miss Hopkins, as
heroine in her place!) it could not be expected that every one should
be of the humble and gentle temper of Miss Amelia Sedley; should take
every opportunity to vanquish Rebecca's hard-heartedness and
ill-humour; and, by a thousand kind words and offices, overcome, for
once at least, her hostility to her kind.
Miss Sharp's father was an artist, and
in that quality had given lessons of drawing at Miss Pinkerton's
school. He was a clever man; a pleasant companion; a careless
student; with a great propensity for running into debt, and a
partiality for the tavern. When he was drunk, he used to beat his
wife and daughter; and the next morning, with a headache, he would
rail at the world for its neglect of his genius, and abuse, with a
good deal of cleverness, and sometimes with perfect reason, the
fools, his brother painters. As it was with the utmost difficulty
that he could keep himself, and as he owed money for a mile round
Soho, where he lived, he thought to better his circumstances by
marrying a young woman of the French nation, who was by profession an
opera-girl. The humble calling of her female parent Miss Sharp never
alluded to, but used to state subsequently that the Entrechats were a
noble family of Gascony, and took great pride in her descent from
them. And curious it is that as she advanced in life this young
lady's ancestors increased in rank and splendour.
Rebecca's mother had had some education
somewhere, and her daughter spoke French with purity and a Parisian
accent. It was in those days rather a rare accomplishment, and led to
her engagement with the orthodox Miss Pinkerton. For her mother being
dead, her father, finding himself not likely to recover, after his
third attack of delirium tremens, wrote a manly and pathetic letter
to Miss Pinkerton, recommending the orphan child to her protection,
and so descended to the grave, after two bailiffs had quarrelled over
his corpse. Rebecca was seventeen when she came to Chiswick, and was
bound over as an articled pupil; her duties being to talk French, as
we have seen; and her privileges to live cost free, and, with a few
guineas a year, to gather scraps of knowledge from the professors who
attended the school.
She was small and slight in person;
pale, sandy-haired, and with eyes habitually cast down: when they
looked up they were very large, odd, and attractive; so attractive
that the Reverend Mr. Crisp, fresh from Oxford, and curate to the
Vicar of Chiswick, the Reverend Mr. Flowerdew, fell in love with Miss
Sharp; being shot dead by a glance of her eyes which was fired all
the way across Chiswick Church from the school-pew to the
reading-desk. This infatuated young man used sometimes to take tea
with Miss Pinkerton, to whom he had been presented by his mamma, and
actually proposed something like marriage in an intercepted note,
which the one-eyed apple-woman was charged to deliver. Mrs. Crisp was
summoned from Buxton, and abruptly carried off her darling boy; but
the idea, even, of such an eagle in the Chiswick dovecot caused a
great flutter in the breast of Miss Pinkerton, who would have sent
away Miss Sharp but that she was bound to her under a forfeit, and
who never could thoroughly believe the young lady's protestations
that she had never exchanged a single word with Mr. Crisp, except
under her own eyes on the two occasions when she had met him at tea.
By the side of many tall and bouncing
young ladies in the establishment, Rebecca Sharp looked like a child.
But she had the dismal precocity of poverty. Many a dun had she
talked to, and turned away from her father's door; many a tradesman
had she coaxed and wheedled into good-humour, and into the granting
of one meal more. She sate commonly with her father, who was very
proud of her wit, and heard the talk of many of his wild
companions—often but ill-suited for a girl to hear. But she never
had been a girl, she said; she had been a woman since she was eight
years old. Oh, why did Miss Pinkerton let such a dangerous bird into
her cage?
The fact is, the old lady believed
Rebecca to be the meekest creature in the world, so admirably, on the
occasions when her father brought her to Chiswick, used Rebecca to
perform the part of the ingenue; and only a year before the
arrangement by which Rebecca had been admitted into her house, and
when Rebecca was sixteen years old, Miss Pinkerton majestically, and
with a little speech, made her a present of a doll—which was, by
the way, the confiscated property of Miss Swindle, discovered
surreptitiously nursing it in school- hours. How the father and
daughter laughed as they trudged home together after the evening
party (it was on the occasion of the speeches, when all the
professors were invited) and how Miss Pinkerton would have raged had
she seen the caricature of herself which the little mimic, Rebecca,
managed to make out of her doll. Becky used to go through dialogues
with it; it formed the delight of Newman Street, Gerrard Street, and
the Artists' quarter: and the young painters, when they came to take
their gin-and-water with their lazy, dissolute, clever, jovial
senior, used regularly to ask Rebecca if Miss Pinkerton was at home:
she was as well known to them, poor soul! as Mr. Lawrence or
President West. Once Rebecca had the honour to pass a few days at
Chiswick; after which she brought back Jemima, and erected another
doll as Miss Jemmy: for though that honest creature had made and
given her jelly and cake enough for three children, and a
seven-shilling piece at parting, the girl's sense of ridicule was far
stronger than her gratitude, and she sacrificed Miss Jemmy quite as
pitilessly as her sister.
The catastrophe came, and she was
brought to the Mall as to her home. The rigid formality of the place
suffocated her: the prayers and the meals, the lessons and the walks,
which were arranged with a conventual regularity, oppressed her
almost beyond endurance; and she looked back to the freedom and the
beggary of the old studio in Soho with so much regret, that
everybody, herself included, fancied she was consumed with grief for
her father. She had a little room in the garret, where the maids
heard her walking and sobbing at night; but it was with rage, and not
with grief. She had not been much of a dissembler, until now her
loneliness taught her to feign. She had never mingled in the society
of women: her father, reprobate as he was, was a man of talent; his
conversation was a thousand times more agreeable to her than the talk
of such of her own sex as she now encountered. The pompous vanity of
the old schoolmistress, the foolish good-humour of her sister, the
silly chat and scandal of the elder girls, and the frigid correctness
of the governesses equally annoyed her; and she had no soft maternal
heart, this unlucky girl, otherwise the prattle and talk of the
younger children, with whose care she was chiefly intrusted, might
have soothed and interested her; but she lived among them two years,
and not one was sorry that she went away. The gentle tender-hearted
Amelia Sedley was the only person to whom she could attach herself in
the least; and who could help attaching herself to Amelia?
The happiness the superior advantages
of the young women round about her, gave Rebecca inexpressible pangs
of envy. "What airs that girl gives herself, because she is an
Earl's grand-daughter," she said of one. "How they cringe
and bow to that Creole, because of her hundred thousand pounds! I am
a thousand times cleverer and more charming than that creature, for
all her wealth. I am as well bred as the Earl's grand-daughter, for
all her fine pedigree; and yet every one passes me by here. And yet,
when I was at my father's, did not the men give up their gayest balls
and parties in order to pass the evening with me?" She
determined at any rate to get free from the prison in which she found
herself, and now began to act for herself, and for the first time to
make connected plans for the future.
She took advantage, therefore, of the
means of study the place offered her; and as she was already a
musician and a good linguist, she speedily went through the little
course of study which was considered necessary for ladies in those
days. Her music she practised incessantly, and one day, when the
girls were out, and she had remained at home, she was overheard to
play a piece so well that Minerva thought, wisely, she could spare
herself the expense of a master for the juniors, and intimated to
Miss Sharp that she was to instruct them in music for the future.
The girl refused; and for the first
time, and to the astonishment of the majestic mistress of the school.
"I am here to speak French with the children," Rebecca said
abruptly, "not to teach them music, and save money for you. Give
me money, and I will teach them."
Minerva was obliged to yield, and, of
course, disliked her from that day. "For five-and-thirty years,"
she said, and with great justice, "I never have seen the
individual who has dared in my own house to question my authority. I
have nourished a viper in my bosom."
"A viper—a fiddlestick,"
said Miss Sharp to the old lady, almost fainting with astonishment.
"You took me because I was useful. There is no question of
gratitude between us. I hate this place, and want to leave it. I will
do nothing here but what I am obliged to do."
It was in vain that the old lady asked
her if she was aware she was speaking to Miss Pinkerton? Rebecca
laughed in her face, with a horrid sarcastic demoniacal laughter,
that almost sent the schoolmistress into fits. "Give me a sum of
money," said the girl, "and get rid of me—or, if you like
better, get me a good place as governess in a nobleman's family—you
can do so if you please." And in their further disputes she
always returned to this point, "Get me a situation—we hate
each other, and I am ready to go."
Worthy Miss Pinkerton, although she had
a Roman nose and a turban, and was as tall as a grenadier, and had
been up to this time an irresistible princess, had no will or
strength like that of her little apprentice, and in vain did battle
against her, and tried to overawe her. Attempting once to scold her
in public, Rebecca hit upon the before-mentioned plan of answering
her in French, which quite routed the old woman. In order to maintain
authority in her school, it became necessary to remove this rebel,
this monster, this serpent, this firebrand; and hearing about this
time that Sir Pitt Crawley's family was in want of a governess, she
actually recommended Miss Sharp for the situation, firebrand and
serpent as she was. "I cannot, certainly," she said, "find
fault with Miss Sharp's conduct, except to myself; and must allow
that her talents and accomplishments are of a high order. As far as
the head goes, at least, she does credit to the educational system
pursued at my establishment."
And so the schoolmistress reconciled
the recommendation to her conscience, and the indentures were
cancelled, and the apprentice was free. The battle here described in
a few lines, of course, lasted for some months. And as Miss Sedley,
being now in her seventeenth year, was about to leave school, and had
a friendship for Miss Sharp ("'tis the only point in Amelia's
behaviour," said Minerva, "which has not been satisfactory
to her mistress"), Miss Sharp was invited by her friend to pass
a week with her at home, before she entered upon her duties as
governess in a private family.
Thus the world began for these two
young ladies. For Amelia it was quite a new, fresh, brilliant world,
with all the bloom upon it. It was not quite a new one for
Rebecca—(indeed, if the truth must be told with respect to the
Crisp affair, the tart-woman hinted to somebody, who took an
affidavit of the fact to somebody else, that there was a great deal
more than was made public regarding Mr. Crisp and Miss Sharp, and
that his letter was in answer to another letter). But who can tell
you the real truth of the matter? At all events, if Rebecca was not
beginning the world, she was beginning it over again.
By the time the young ladies reached
Kensington turnpike, Amelia had not forgotten her companions, but had
dried her tears, and had blushed very much and been delighted at a
young officer of the Life Guards, who spied her as he was riding by,
and said, "A dem fine gal, egad!" and before the carriage
arrived in Russell Square, a great deal of conversation had taken
place about the Drawing-room, and whether or not young ladies wore
powder as well as hoops when presented, and whether she was to have
that honour: to the Lord Mayor's ball she knew she was to go. And
when at length home was reached, Miss Amelia Sedley skipped out on
Sambo's arm, as happy and as handsome a girl as any in the whole big
city of London. Both he and coachman agreed on this point, and so did
her father and mother, and so did every one of the servants in the
house, as they stood bobbing, and curtseying, and smiling, in the
hall to welcome their young mistress.
You may be sure that she showed Rebecca
over every room of the house, and everything in every one of her
drawers; and her books, and her piano, and her dresses, and all her
necklaces, brooches, laces, and gimcracks. She insisted upon Rebecca
accepting the white cornelian and the turquoise rings, and a sweet
sprigged muslin, which was too small for her now, though it would fit
her friend to a nicety; and she determined in her heart to ask her
mother's permission to present her white Cashmere shawl to her
friend. Could she not spare it? and had not her brother Joseph just
brought her two from India?
When Rebecca saw the two magnificent
Cashmere shawls which Joseph Sedley had brought home to his sister,
she said, with perfect truth, "that it must be delightful to
have a brother," and easily got the pity of the tender-hearted
Amelia for being alone in the world, an orphan without friends or
kindred.
"Not alone," said Amelia;
"you know, Rebecca, I shall always be your friend, and love you
as a sister—indeed I will."
"Ah, but to have parents, as you
have—kind, rich, affectionate parents, who give you everything you
ask for; and their love, which is more precious than all! My poor
papa could give me nothing, and I had but two frocks in all the
world! And then, to have a brother, a dear brother! Oh, how you must
love him!"
Amelia laughed.
"What! don't you love him? you,
who say you love everybody?"
"Yes, of course, I do—only—"
"Only what?"
"Only Joseph doesn't seem to care
much whether I love him or not. He gave me two fingers to shake when
he arrived after ten years' absence! He is very kind and good, but he
scarcely ever speaks to me; I think he loves his pipe a great deal
better than his"—but here Amelia checked herself, for why
should she speak ill of her brother? "He was very kind to me as
a child," she added; "I was but five years old when he went
away."
"Isn't he very rich?" said
Rebecca. "They say all Indian nabobs are enormously rich."
"I believe he has a very large
income."
"And is your sister-in-law a nice
pretty woman?"
"La! Joseph is not married,"
said Amelia, laughing again.
Perhaps she had mentioned the fact
already to Rebecca, but that young lady did not appear to have
remembered it; indeed, vowed and protested that she expected to see a
number of Amelia's nephews and nieces. She was quite disappointed
that Mr. Sedley was not married; she was sure Amelia had said he was,
and she doted so on little children.
"I think you must have had enough
of them at Chiswick," said Amelia, rather wondering at the
sudden tenderness on her friend's part; and indeed in later days Miss
Sharp would never have committed herself so far as to advance
opinions, the untruth of which would have been so easily detected.
But we must remember that she is but nineteen as yet, unused to the
art of deceiving, poor innocent creature! and making her own
experience in her own person. The meaning of the above series of
queries, as translated in the heart of this ingenious young woman,
was simply this: "If Mr. Joseph Sedley is rich and unmarried,
why should I not marry him? I have only a fortnight, to be sure, but
there is no harm in trying." And she determined within herself
to make this laudable attempt. She redoubled her caresses to Amelia;
she kissed the white cornelian necklace as she put it on; and vowed
she would never, never part with it. When the dinner-bell rang she
went downstairs with her arm round her friend's waist, as is the
habit of young ladies. She was so agitated at the drawing-room door,
that she could hardly find courage to enter. "Feel my heart, how
it beats, dear!" said she to her friend.
"No, it doesn't," said
Amelia. "Come in, don't be frightened. Papa won't do you any
harm."
Chapter III
*
Rebecca Is in Presence of the Enemy
A VERY stout, puffy man, in buckskins
and Hessian boots, with several immense neckcloths that rose almost
to his nose, with a red striped waistcoat and an apple green coat
with steel buttons almost as large as crown pieces (it was the
morning costume of a dandy or blood of those days) was reading the
paper by the fire when the two girls entered, and bounced off his
arm-chair, and blushed excessively, and hid his entire face almost in
his neckcloths at this apparition.
"It's only your sister, Joseph,"
said Amelia, laughing and shaking the two fingers which he held out.
"I've come home FOR GOOD, you know; and this is my friend, Miss
Sharp, whom you have heard me mention."
"No, never, upon my word,"
said the head under the neckcloth, shaking very much—"that is,
yes—what abominably cold weather, Miss"—and herewith he fell
to poking the fire with all his might, although it was in the middle
of June.
"He's very handsome,"
whispered Rebecca to Amelia, rather loud.
"Do you think so?" said the
latter. "I'll tell him."
"Darling! not for worlds,"
said Miss Sharp, starting back as timid as a fawn. She had previously
made a respectful virgin-like curtsey to the gentleman, and her
modest eyes gazed so perseveringly on the carpet that it was a wonder
how she should have found an opportunity to see him.
"Thank you for the beautiful
shawls, brother," said Amelia to the fire poker. "Are they
not beautiful, Rebecca?"
"O heavenly!" said Miss
Sharp, and her eyes went from the carpet straight to the chandelier.
Joseph still continued a huge
clattering at the poker and tongs, puffing and blowing the while, and
turning as red as his yellow face would allow him. "I can't make
you such handsome presents, Joseph," continued his sister, "but
while I was at school, I have embroidered for you a very beautiful
pair of braces."
"Good Gad! Amelia," cried the
brother, in serious alarm, "what do you mean?" and plunging
with all his might at the bell-rope, that article of furniture came
away in his hand, and increased the honest fellow's confusion. "For
heaven's sake see if my buggy's at the door. I CAN'T wait. I must go.
D— that groom of mine. I must go."
At this minute the father of the family
walked in, rattling his seals like a true British merchant. "What's
the matter, Emmy?" says he.
"Joseph wants me to see if his—his
buggy is at the door. What is a buggy, Papa?"
"It is a one-horse palanquin,"
said the old gentleman, who was a wag in his way.
Joseph at this burst out into a wild
fit of laughter; in which, encountering the eye of Miss Sharp, he
stopped all of a sudden, as if he had been shot.
"This young lady is your friend?
Miss Sharp, I am very happy to see you. Have you and Emmy been
quarrelling already with Joseph, that he wants to be off?"
"I promised Bonamy of our service,
sir," said Joseph, "to dine with him."
"O fie! didn't you tell your
mother you would dine here?"
"But in this dress it's
impossible."
"Look at him, isn't he handsome
enough to dine anywhere, Miss Sharp?"
On which, of course, Miss Sharp looked
at her friend, and they both set off in a fit of laughter, highly
agreeable to the old gentleman.
"Did you ever see a pair of
buckskins like those at Miss Pinkerton's?" continued he,
following up his advantage.
"Gracious heavens! Father,"
cried Joseph.
"There now, I have hurt his
feelings. Mrs. Sedley, my dear, I have hurt your son's feelings. I
have alluded to his buckskins. Ask Miss Sharp if I haven't? Come,
Joseph, be friends with Miss Sharp, and let us all go to dinner."
"There's a pillau, Joseph, just as
you like it, and Papa has brought home the best turbot in
Billingsgate."
"Come, come, sir, walk downstairs
with Miss Sharp, and I will follow with these two young women,"
said the father, and he took an arm of wife and daughter and walked
merrily off.
If Miss Rebecca Sharp had determined in
her heart upon making the conquest of this big beau, I don't think,
ladies, we have any right to blame her; for though the task of
husband-hunting is generally, and with becoming modesty, entrusted by
young persons to their mammas, recollect that Miss Sharp had no kind
parent to arrange these delicate matters for her, and that if she did
not get a husband for herself, there was no one else in the wide
world who would take the trouble off her hands. What causes young
people to "come out," but the noble ambition of matrimony?
What sends them trooping to watering-places? What keeps them dancing
till five o'clock in the morning through a whole mortal season? What
causes them to labour at pianoforte sonatas, and to learn four songs
from a fashionable master at a guinea a lesson, and to play the harp
if they have handsome arms and neat elbows, and to wear Lincoln Green
toxophilite hats and feathers, but that they may bring down some
"desirable" young man with those killing bows and arrows of
theirs? What causes respectable parents to take up their carpets, set
their houses topsy-turvy, and spend a fifth of their year's income in
ball suppers and iced champagne? Is it sheer love of their species,
and an unadulterated wish to see young people happy and dancing?
Psha! they want to marry their daughters; and, as honest Mrs. Sedley
has, in the depths of her kind heart, already arranged a score of
little schemes for the settlement of her Amelia, so also had our
beloved but unprotected Rebecca determined to do her very best to
secure the husband, who was even more necessary for her than for her
friend. She had a vivid imagination; she had, besides, read the
Arabian Nights and Guthrie's Geography; and it is a fact that while
she was dressing for dinner, and after she had asked Amelia whether
her brother was very rich, she had built for herself a most
magnificent castle in the air, of which she was mistress, with a
husband somewhere in the background (she had not seen him as yet, and
his figure would not therefore be very distinct); she had arrayed
herself in an infinity of shawls, turbans, and diamond necklaces, and
had mounted upon an elephant to the sound of the march in Bluebeard,
in order to pay a visit of ceremony to the Grand Mogul. Charming
Alnaschar visions! it is the happy privilege of youth to construct
you, and many a fanciful young creature besides Rebecca Sharp has
indulged in these delightful day-dreams ere now!
Joseph Sedley was twelve years older
than his sister Amelia. He was in the East India Company's Civil
Service, and his name appeared, at the period of which we write, in
the Bengal division of the East India Register, as collector of
Boggley Wollah, an honourable and lucrative post, as everybody knows:
in order to know to what higher posts Joseph rose in the service, the
reader is referred to the same periodical.
Boggley Wollah is situated in a fine,
lonely, marshy, jungly district, famous for snipe-shooting, and where
not unfrequently you may flush a tiger. Ramgunge, where there is a
magistrate, is only forty miles off, and there is a cavalry station
about thirty miles farther; so Joseph wrote home to his parents, when
he took possession of his collectorship. He had lived for about eight
years of his life, quite alone, at this charming place, scarcely
seeing a Christian face except twice a year, when the detachment
arrived to carry off the revenues which he had collected, to
Calcutta.
Luckily, at this time he caught a liver
complaint, for the cure of which he returned to Europe, and which was
the source of great comfort and amusement to him in his native
country. He did not live with his family while in London, but had
lodgings of his own, like a gay young bachelor. Before he went to
India he was too young to partake of the delightful pleasures of a
man about town, and plunged into them on his return with considerable
assiduity. He drove his horses in the Park; he dined at the
fashionable taverns (for the Oriental Club was not as yet invented);
he frequented the theatres, as the mode was in those days, or made
his appearance at the opera, laboriously attired in tights and a
cocked hat.
On returning to India, and ever after,
he used to talk of the pleasure of this period of his existence with
great enthusiasm, and give you to understand that he and Brummel were
the leading bucks of the day. But he was as lonely here as in his
jungle at Boggley Wollah. He scarcely knew a single soul in the
metropolis: and were it not for his doctor, and the society of his
blue-pill, and his liver complaint, he must have died of loneliness.
He was lazy, peevish, and a bon-vivant; the appearance of a lady
frightened him beyond measure; hence it was but seldom that he joined
the paternal circle in Russell Square, where there was plenty of
gaiety, and where the jokes of his good-natured old father frightened
his amour- propre. His bulk caused Joseph much anxious thought and
alarm; now and then he would make a desperate attempt to get rid of
his superabundant fat; but his indolence and love of good living
speedily got the better of these endeavours at reform, and he found
himself again at his three meals a day. He never was well dressed;
but he took the hugest pains to adorn his big person, and passed many
hours daily in that occupation. His valet made a fortune out of his
wardrobe: his toilet-table was covered with as many pomatums and
essences as ever were employed by an old beauty: he had tried, in
order to give himself a waist, every girth, stay, and waistband then
invented. Like most fat men, he would have his clothes made too
tight, and took care they should be of the most brilliant colours and
youthful cut. When dressed at length, in the afternoon, he would
issue forth to take a drive with nobody in the Park; and then would
come back in order to dress again and go and dine with nobody at the
Piazza Coffee-House. He was as vain as a girl; and perhaps his
extreme shyness was one of the results of his extreme vanity. If Miss
Rebecca can get the better of him, and at her first entrance into
life, she is a young person of no ordinary cleverness.
The first move showed considerable
skill. When she called Sedley a very handsome man, she knew that
Amelia would tell her mother, who would probably tell Joseph, or who,
at any rate, would be pleased by the compliment paid to her son. All
mothers are. If you had told Sycorax that her son Caliban was as
handsome as Apollo, she would have been pleased, witch as she was.
Perhaps, too, Joseph Sedley would overhear the compliment—Rebecca
spoke loud enough—and he did hear, and (thinking in his heart that
he was a very fine man) the praise thrilled through every fibre of
his big body, and made it tingle with pleasure. Then, however, came a
recoil. "Is the girl making fun of me?" he thought, and
straightway he bounced towards the bell, and was for retreating, as
we have seen, when his father's jokes and his mother's entreaties
caused him to pause and stay where he was. He conducted the young
lady down to dinner in a dubious and agitated frame of mind. "Does
she really think I am handsome?" thought he, "or is she
only making game of me?" We have talked of Joseph Sedley being
as vain as a girl. Heaven help us! the girls have only to turn the
tables, and say of one of their own sex, "She is as vain as a
man," and they will have perfect reason. The bearded creatures
are quite as eager for praise, quite as finikin over their toilettes,
quite as proud of their personal advantages, quite as conscious of
their powers of fascination, as any coquette in the world.
Downstairs, then, they went, Joseph
very red and blushing, Rebecca very modest, and holding her green
eyes downwards. She was dressed in white, with bare shoulders as
white as snow—the picture of youth, unprotected innocence, and
humble virgin simplicity. "I must be very quiet," thought
Rebecca, "and very much interested about India."
Now we have heard how Mrs. Sedley had
prepared a fine curry for her son, just as he liked it, and in the
course of dinner a portion of this dish was offered to Rebecca. "What
is it?" said she, turning an appealing look to Mr. Joseph.
"Capital," said he. His mouth
was full of it: his face quite red with the delightful exercise of
gobbling. "Mother, it's as good as my own curries in India."
"Oh, I must try some, if it is an
Indian dish," said Miss Rebecca. "I am sure everything must
be good that comes from there."
"Give Miss Sharp some curry, my
dear," said Mr. Sedley, laughing.
Rebecca had never tasted the dish
before.
"Do you find it as good as
everything else from India?" said Mr. Sedley.
"Oh, excellent!" said
Rebecca, who was suffering tortures with the cayenne pepper.
"Try a chili with it, Miss Sharp,"
said Joseph, really interested.
"A chili," said Rebecca,
gasping. "Oh yes!" She thought a chili was something cool,
as its name imported, and was served with some. "How fresh and
green they look," she said, and put one into her mouth. It was
hotter than the curry; flesh and blood could bear it no longer. She
laid down her fork. "Water, for Heaven's sake, water!" she
cried. Mr. Sedley burst out laughing (he was a coarse man, from the
Stock Exchange, where they love all sorts of practical jokes). "They
are real Indian, I assure you," said he. "Sambo, give Miss
Sharp some water."
The paternal laugh was echoed by
Joseph, who thought the joke capital. The ladies only smiled a
little. They thought poor Rebecca suffered too much. She would have
liked to choke old Sedley, but she swallowed her mortification as
well as she had the abominable curry before it, and as soon as she
could speak, said, with a comical, good-humoured air, "I ought
to have remembered the pepper which the Princess of Persia puts in
the cream-tarts in the Arabian Nights. Do you put cayenne into your
cream-tarts in India, sir?"
Old Sedley began to laugh, and thought
Rebecca was a good-humoured girl. Joseph simply said, "Cream-tarts,
Miss? Our cream is very bad in Bengal. We generally use goats' milk;
and, 'gad, do you know, I've got to prefer it!"
"You won't like EVERYTHING from
India now, Miss Sharp," said the old gentleman; but when the
ladies had retired after dinner, the wily old fellow said to his son,
"Have a care, Joe; that girl is setting her cap at you."
"Pooh! nonsense!" said Joe,
highly flattered. "I recollect, sir, there was a girl at Dumdum,
a daughter of Cutler of the Artillery, and afterwards married to
Lance, the surgeon, who made a dead set at me in the year '4—at me
and Mulligatawney, whom I mentioned to you before dinner—a devilish
good fellow Mulligatawney—he's a magistrate at Budgebudge, and sure
to be in council in five years. Well, sir, the Artillery gave a ball,
and Quintin, of the King's 14th, said to me, 'Sedley,' said he, 'I
bet you thirteen to ten that Sophy Cutler hooks either you or
Mulligatawney before the rains.' 'Done,' says I; and egad, sir—this
claret's very good. Adamson's or Carbonell's?"
A slight snore was the only reply: the
honest stockbroker was asleep, and so the rest of Joseph's story was
lost for that day. But he was always exceedingly communicative in a
man's party, and has told this delightful tale many scores of times
to his apothecary, Dr. Gollop, when he came to inquire about the
liver and the blue-pill.
Being an invalid, Joseph Sedley
contented himself with a bottle of claret besides his Madeira at
dinner, and he managed a couple of plates full of strawberries and
cream, and twenty-four little rout cakes that were lying neglected in
a plate near him, and certainly (for novelists have the privilege of
knowing everything) he thought a great deal about the girl upstairs.
"A nice, gay, merry young creature," thought he to himself.
"How she looked at me when I picked up her handkerchief at
dinner! She dropped it twice. Who's that singing in the drawing-room?
'Gad! shall I go up and see?"
But his modesty came rushing upon him
with uncontrollable force. His father was asleep: his hat was in the
hall: there was a hackney- coach standing hard by in Southampton Row.
"I'll go and see the Forty Thieves," said he, "and
Miss Decamp's dance"; and he slipped away gently on the pointed
toes of his boots, and disappeared, without waking his worthy parent.
"There goes Joseph," said
Amelia, who was looking from the open windows of the drawing-room,
while Rebecca was singing at the piano.
"Miss Sharp has frightened him
away," said Mrs. Sedley. "Poor Joe, why WILL he be so shy?"
Chapter IV
*
The Green Silk Purse
Poor Joe's panic lasted for two or
three days; during which he did not visit the house, nor during that
period did Miss Rebecca ever mention his name. She was all respectful
gratitude to Mrs. Sedley; delighted beyond measure at the Bazaars;
and in a whirl of wonder at the theatre, whither the good-natured
lady took her. One day, Amelia had a headache, and could not go upon
some party of pleasure to which the two young people were invited:
nothing could induce her friend to go without her. "What! you
who have shown the poor orphan what happiness and love are for the
first time in her life—quit YOU? Never!" and the green eyes
looked up to Heaven and filled with tears; and Mrs. Sedley could not
but own that her daughter's friend had a charming kind heart of her
own.
As for Mr. Sedley's jokes, Rebecca
laughed at them with a cordiality and perseverance which not a little
pleased and softened that good- natured gentleman. Nor was it with
the chiefs of the family alone that Miss Sharp found favour. She
interested Mrs. Blenkinsop by evincing the deepest sympathy in the
raspberry-jam preserving, which operation was then going on in the
Housekeeper's room; she persisted in calling Sambo "Sir,"
and "Mr. Sambo," to the delight of that attendant; and she
apologised to the lady's maid for giving her trouble in venturing to
ring the bell, with such sweetness and humility, that the Servants'
Hall was almost as charmed with her as the Drawing Room.
Once, in looking over some drawings
which Amelia had sent from school, Rebecca suddenly came upon one
which caused her to burst into tears and leave the room. It was on
the day when Joe Sedley made his second appearance.
Amelia hastened after her friend to
know the cause of this display of feeling, and the good-natured girl
came back without her companion, rather affected too. "You know,
her father was our drawing-master, Mamma, at Chiswick, and used to do
all the best parts of our drawings."
"My love! I'm sure I always heard
Miss Pinkerton say that he did not touch them—he only mounted
them." "It was called mounting, Mamma. Rebecca remembers
the drawing, and her father working at it, and the thought of it came
upon her rather suddenly—and so, you know, she—"
"The poor child is all heart,"
said Mrs. Sedley.
"I wish she could stay with us
another week," said Amelia.
"She's devilish like Miss Cutler
that I used to meet at Dumdum, only fairer. She's married now to
Lance, the Artillery Surgeon. Do you know, Ma'am, that once Quintin,
of the 14th, bet me—"
"O Joseph, we know that story,"
said Amelia, laughing. Never mind about telling that; but persuade
Mamma to write to Sir Something Crawley for leave of absence for poor
dear Rebecca: here she comes, her eyes red with weeping."
"I'm better, now," said the
girl, with the sweetest smile possible, taking good-natured Mrs.
Sedley's extended hand and kissing it respectfully. "How kind
you all are to me! All," she added, with a laugh, "except
you, Mr. Joseph."
"Me!" said Joseph, meditating
an instant departure "Gracious Heavens! Good Gad! Miss Sharp!'
"Yes; how could you be so cruel as
to make me eat that horrid pepper-dish at dinner, the first day I
ever saw you? You are not so good to me as dear Amelia."
"He doesn't know you so well,"
cried Amelia.
"I defy anybody not to be good to
you, my dear," said her mother.
"The curry was capital; indeed it
was," said Joe, quite gravely. "Perhaps there was NOT
enough citron juice in it—no, there was NOT."
"And the chilis?"
"By Jove, how they made you cry
out!" said Joe, caught by the ridicule of the circumstance, and
exploding in a fit of laughter which ended quite suddenly, as usual.
"I shall take care how I let YOU
choose for me another time," said Rebecca, as they went down
again to dinner. "I didn't think men were fond of putting poor
harmless girls to pain."
"By Gad, Miss Rebecca, I wouldn't
hurt you for the world."
"No," said she, "I KNOW
you wouldn't"; and then she gave him ever so gentle a pressure
with her little hand, and drew it back quite frightened, and looked
first for one instant in his face, and then down at the carpet-rods;
and I am not prepared to say that Joe's heart did not thump at this
little involuntary, timid, gentle motion of regard on the part of the
simple girl.
It was an advance, and as such,
perhaps, some ladies of indisputable correctness and gentility will
condemn the action as immodest; but, you see, poor dear Rebecca had
all this work to do for herself. If a person is too poor to keep a
servant, though ever so elegant, he must sweep his own rooms: if a
dear girl has no dear Mamma to settle matters with the young man, she
must do it for herself. And oh, what a mercy it is that these women
do not exercise their powers oftener! We can't resist them, if they
do. Let them show ever so little inclination, and men go down on
their knees at once: old or ugly, it is all the same. And this I set
down as a positive truth. A woman with fair opportunities, and
without an absolute hump, may marry WHOM SHE LIKES. Only let us be
thankful that the darlings are like the beasts of the field, and
don't know their own power. They would overcome us entirely if they
did.
"Egad!" thought Joseph,
entering the dining-room, "I exactly begin to feel as I did at
Dumdum with Miss Cutler." Many sweet little appeals, half
tender, half jocular, did Miss Sharp make to him about the dishes at
dinner; for by this time she was on a footing of considerable
familiarity with the family, and as for the girls, they loved each
other like sisters. Young unmarried girls always do, if they are in a
house together for ten days.
As if bent upon advancing Rebecca's
plans in every way—what must Amelia do, but remind her brother of a
promise made last Easter holidays—"When I was a girl at
school," said she, laughing—a promise that he, Joseph, would
take her to Vauxhall. "Now," she said, "that Rebecca
is with us, will be the very time."
"O, delightful!" said
Rebecca, going to clap her hands; but she recollected herself, and
paused, like a modest creature, as she was.
"To-night is not the night,"
said Joe.
"Well, to-morrow."
"To-morrow your Papa and I dine
out," said Mrs. Sedley.
"You don't suppose that I'm going,
Mrs. Sed?" said her husband, "and that a woman of your
years and size is to catch cold, in such an abominable damp place?"
'The children must have someone with
them," cried Mrs. Sedley.
"Let Joe go," said-his
father, laughing. "He's big enough." At which speech even
Mr. Sambo at the sideboard burst out laughing, and poor fat Joe felt
inclined to become a parricide almost.
"Undo his stays!" continued
the pitiless old gentleman. "Fling some water in his face, Miss
Sharp, or carry him upstairs: the dear creature's fainting. Poor
victim! carry him up; he's as light as a feather!"
"If I stand this, sir, I'm d——!"
roared Joseph.
"Order Mr. Jos's elephant, Sambo!"
cried the father. "Send to Exeter 'Change, Sambo"; but
seeing Jos ready almost to cry with vexation, the old joker stopped
his laughter, and said, holding out his hand to his son, "It's
all fair on the Stock Exchange, Jos—and, Sambo, never mind the
elephant, but give me and Mr. Jos a glass of Champagne. Boney himself
hasn't got such in his cellar, my boy!"
A goblet of Champagne restored Joseph's
equanimity, and before the bottle was emptied, of which as an invalid
he took two-thirds, he had agreed to take the young ladies to
Vauxhall.
"The girls must have a gentleman
apiece," said the old gentleman. "Jos will be sure to leave
Emmy in the crowd, he will be so taken up with Miss Sharp here. Send
to 96, and ask George Osborne if he'll come."
At this, I don't know in the least for
what reason, Mrs. Sedley looked at her husband and laughed. Mr.
Sedley's eyes twinkled in a manner indescribably roguish, and he
looked at Amelia; and Amelia, hanging down her head, blushed as only
young ladies of seventeen know how to blush, and as Miss Rebecca
Sharp never blushed in her life—at least not since she was eight
years old, and when she was caught stealing jam out of a cupboard by
her godmother. "Amelia had better write a note," said her
father; "and let George Osborne see what a beautiful handwriting
we have brought back from Miss Pinkerton's. Do you remember when you
wrote to him to come on Twelfth-night, Emmy, and spelt twelfth
without the f?"
"That was years ago," said
Amelia.
"It seems like yesterday, don't
it, John?" said Mrs. Sedley to her husband; and that night in a
conversation which took place in a front room in the second floor, in
a sort of tent, hung round with chintz of a rich and fantastic India
pattern, and double with calico of a tender rose-colour; in the
interior of which species of marquee was a featherbed, on which were
two pillows, on which were two round red faces, one in a laced
nightcap, and one in a simple cotton one, ending in a tassel—in a
CURTAIN LECTURE, I say, Mrs. Sedley took her husband to task for his
cruel conduct to poor Joe.
"It was quite wicked of you, Mr.
Sedley," said she, "to torment the poor boy so."
"My dear," said the
cotton-tassel in defence of his conduct, "Jos is a great deal
vainer than you ever were in your life, and that's saying a good
deal. Though, some thirty years ago, in the year seventeen hundred
and eighty—what was it?—perhaps you had a right to be vain—I
don't say no. But I've no patience with Jos and his dandified
modesty. It is out-Josephing Joseph, my dear, and all the while the
boy is only thinking of himself, and what a fine fellow he is. I
doubt, Ma'am, we shall have some trouble with him yet. Here is Emmy's
little friend making love to him as hard as she can; that's quite
clear; and if she does not catch him some other will. That man is
destined to be a prey to woman, as I am to go on 'Change every day.
It's a mercy he did not bring us over a black daughter- in-law, my
dear. But, mark my words, the first woman who fishes for him, hooks
him."
"She shall go off to-morrow, the
little artful creature," said Mrs. Sedley, with great energy.
"Why not she as well as another,
Mrs. Sedley? The girl's a white face at any rate. I don't care who
marries him. Let Joe please himself."
And presently the voices of the two
speakers were hushed, or were replaced by the gentle but unromantic
music of the nose; and save when the church bells tolled the hour and
the watchman called it, all was silent at the house of John Sedley,
Esquire, of Russell Square, and the Stock Exchange.
When morning came, the good-natured
Mrs. Sedley no longer thought of executing her threats with regard to
Miss Sharp; for though nothing is more keen, nor more common, nor
more justifiable, than maternal jealousy, yet she could not bring
herself to suppose that the little, humble, grateful, gentle
governess would dare to look up to such a magnificent personage as
the Collector of Boggley Wollah. The petition, too, for an extension
of the young lady's leave of absence had already been despatched, and
it would be difficult to find a pretext for abruptly dismissing her.
And as if all things conspired in
favour of the gentle Rebecca, the very elements (although she was not
inclined at first to acknowledge their action in her behalf)
interposed to aid her. For on the evening appointed for the Vauxhall
party, George Osborne having come to dinner, and the elders of the
house having departed, according to invitation, to dine with Alderman
Balls at Highbury Barn, there came on such a thunder-storm as only
happens on Vauxhall nights, and as obliged the young people,
perforce, to remain at home. Mr. Osborne did not seem in the least
disappointed at this occurrence. He and Joseph Sedley drank a fitting
quantity of port-wine, tete-a-tete, in the dining-room, during the
drinking of which Sedley told a number of his best Indian stories;
for he was extremely talkative in man's society; and afterwards Miss
Amelia Sedley did the honours of the drawing-room; and these four
young persons passed such a comfortable evening together, that they
declared they were rather glad of the thunder-storm than otherwise,
which had caused them to put off their visit to Vauxhall.
Osborne was Sedley's godson, and had
been one of the family any time these three-and-twenty years. At six
weeks old, he had received from John Sedley a present of a silver
cup; at six months old, a coral with gold whistle and bells; from his
youth upwards he was "tipped" regularly by the old
gentleman at Christmas: and on going back to school, he remembered
perfectly well being thrashed by Joseph Sedley, when the latter was a
big, swaggering hobbadyhoy, and George an impudent urchin of ten
years old. In a word, George was as familiar with the family as such
daily acts of kindness and intercourse could make him.
"Do you remember, Sedley, what a
fury you were in, when I cut off the tassels of your Hessian boots,
and how Miss—hem!—how Amelia rescued me from a beating, by
falling down on her knees and crying out to her brother Jos, not to
beat little George?"
Jos remembered this remarkable
circumstance perfectly well, but vowed that he had totally forgotten
it.
"Well, do you remember coming down
in a gig to Dr. Swishtail's to see me, before you went to India, and
giving me half a guinea and a pat on the head? I always had an idea
that you were at least seven feet high, and was quite astonished at
your return from India to find you no taller than myself."
"How good of Mr. Sedley to go to
your school and give you the money!" exclaimed Rebecca, in
accents of extreme delight.
"Yes, and after I had cut the
tassels of his boots too. Boys never forget those tips at school, nor
the givers."
"I delight in Hessian boots,"
said Rebecca. Jos Sedley, who admired his own legs prodigiously, and
always wore this ornamental chaussure, was extremely pleased at this
remark, though he drew his legs under his chair as it was made.
"Miss Sharp!" said George
Osborne, "you who are so clever an artist, you must make a grand
historical picture of the scene of the boots. Sedley shall be
represented in buckskins, and holding one of the injured boots in one
hand; by the other he shall have hold of my shirt-frill. Amelia shall
be kneeling near him, with her little hands up; and the picture shall
have a grand allegorical title, as the frontispieces have in the
Medulla and the spelling-book."
"I shan't have time to do it
here," said Rebecca. 'I'll do it when —when I'm gone."
And she dropped her voice, and looked so sad and piteous, that
everybody felt how cruel her lot was, and how sorry they would be to
part with her.
"O that you could stay longer,
dear Rebecca," said Amelia.
"Why?" answered the other,
still more sadly. "That I may be only the more unhap—unwilling
to lose you?" And she turned away her head. Amelia began to give
way to that natural infirmity of tears which, we have said, was one
of the defects of this silly little thing. George Osborne looked at
the two young women with a touched curiosity; and Joseph Sedley
heaved something very like a sigh out of his big chest, as he cast
his eyes down towards his favourite Hessian boots.
"Let us have some music, Miss
Sedley—Amelia," said George, who felt at that moment an
extraordinary, almost irresistible impulse to seize the
above-mentioned young woman in his arms, and to kiss her in the face
of the company; and she looked at him for a moment, and if I should
say that they fell in love with each other at that single instant of
time, I should perhaps be telling an untruth, for the fact is that
these two young people had been bred up by their parents for this
very purpose, and their banns had, as it were, been read in their
respective families any time these ten years. They went off to the
piano, which was situated, as pianos usually are, in the back
drawing-room; and as it was rather dark, Miss Amelia, in the most
unaffected way in the world, put her hand into Mr. Osborne's, who, of
course, could see the way among the chairs and ottomans a great deal
better than she could. But this arrangement left Mr. Joseph Sedley
tete-a-tete with Rebecca, at the drawing-room table, where the latter
was occupied in knitting a green silk purse.
"There is no need to ask family
secrets," said Miss Sharp. "Those two have told theirs."
"As soon as he gets his company,"
said Joseph, "I believe the affair is settled. George Osborne is
a capital fellow."
"And your sister the dearest
creature in the world," said Rebecca. "Happy the man who
wins her!" With this, Miss Sharp gave a great sigh.
When two unmarried persons get
together, and talk upon such delicate subjects as the present, a
great deal of confidence and intimacy is presently established
between them. There is no need of giving a special report of the
conversation which now took place between Mr. Sedley and the young
lady; for the conversation, as may be judged from the foregoing
specimen, was not especially witty or eloquent; it seldom is in
private societies, or anywhere except in very high- flown and
ingenious novels. As there was music in the next room, the talk was
carried on, of course, in a low and becoming tone, though, for the
matter of that, the couple in the next apartment would not have been
disturbed had the talking been ever so loud, so occupied were they
with their own pursuits.
Almost for the first time in his life,
Mr. Sedley found himself talking, without the least timidity or
hesitation, to a person of the other sex. Miss Rebecca asked him a
great number of questions about India, which gave him an opportunity
of narrating many interesting anecdotes about that country and
himself. He described the balls at Government House, and the manner
in which they kept themselves cool in the hot weather, with punkahs,
tatties, and other contrivances; and he was very witty regarding the
number of Scotchmen whom Lord Minto, the Governor-General,
patronised; and then he described a tiger-hunt; and the manner in
which the mahout of his elephant had been pulled off his seat by one
of the infuriated animals. How delighted Miss Rebecca was at the
Government balls, and how she laughed at the stories of the Scotch
aides-de-camp, and called Mr. Sedley a sad wicked satirical creature;
and how frightened she was at the story of the elephant! "For
your mother's sake, dear Mr. Sedley," she said, "for the
sake of all your friends, promise NEVER to go on one of those horrid
expeditions."
"Pooh, pooh, Miss Sharp,"
said he, pulling up his shirt-collars; "the danger makes the
sport only the pleasanter." He had never been but once at a
tiger-hunt, when the accident in question occurred, and when he was
half killed—not by the tiger, but by the fright. And as he talked
on, he grew quite bold, and actually had the audacity to ask Miss
Rebecca for whom she was knitting the green silk purse? He was quite
surprised and delighted at his own graceful familiar manner.
"For any one who wants a purse,"
replied Miss Rebecca, looking at him in the most gentle winning way.
Sedley was going to make one of the most eloquent speeches possible,
and had begun—"O Miss Sharp, how—" when some song which
was performed in the other room came to an end, and caused him to
hear his own voice so distinctly that he stopped, blushed, and blew
his nose in great agitation.
"Did you ever hear anything like
your brother's eloquence?" whispered Mr. Osborne to Amelia.
"Why, your friend has worked miracles."
"The more the better," said
Miss Amelia; who, like almost all women who are worth a pin, was a
match-maker in her heart, and would have been delighted that Joseph
should carry back a wife to India. She had, too, in the course of
this few days' constant intercourse, warmed into a most tender
friendship for Rebecca, and discovered a million of virtues and
amiable qualities in her which she had not perceived when they were
at Chiswick together. For the affection of young ladies is of as
rapid growth as Jack's bean-stalk, and reaches up to the sky in a
night. It is no blame to them that after marriage this Sehnsucht nach
der Liebe subsides. It is what sentimentalists, who deal in very big
words, call a yearning after the Ideal, and simply means that women
are commonly not satisfied until they have husbands and children on
whom they may centre affections, which are spent elsewhere, as it
were, in small change.
Having expended her little store of
songs, or having stayed long enough in the back drawing-room, it now
appeared proper to Miss Amelia to ask her friend to sing. "You
would not have listened to me," she said to Mr. Osborne (though
she knew she was telling a fib), "had you heard Rebecca first."
"I give Miss Sharp warning,
though," said Osborne, "that, right or wrong, I consider
Miss Amelia Sedley the first singer in the world."
"You shall hear," said
Amelia; and Joseph Sedley was actually polite enough to carry the
candles to the piano. Osborne hinted that he should like quite as
well to sit in the dark; but Miss Sedley, laughing, declined to bear
him company any farther, and the two accordingly followed Mr. Joseph.
Rebecca sang far better than her friend (though of course Osborne was
free to keep his opinion), and exerted herself to the utmost, and,
indeed, to the wonder of Amelia, who had never known her perform so
well. She sang a French song, which Joseph did not understand in the
least, and which George confessed he did not understand, and then a
number of those simple ballads which were the fashion forty years
ago, and in which British tars, our King, poor Susan, blue-eyed Mary,
and the like, were the principal themes. They are not, it is said,
very brilliant, in a musical point of view, but contain numberless
good-natured, simple appeals to the affections, which people
understood better than the milk-and-water lagrime, sospiri, and
felicita of the eternal Donizettian music with which we are favoured
now-a-days.
Conversation of a sentimental sort,
befitting the subject, was carried on between the songs, to which
Sambo, after he had brought the tea, the delighted cook, and even
Mrs. Blenkinsop, the housekeeper, condescended to listen on the
landing-place.
Among these ditties was one, the last
of the concert, and to the following effect:
Ah! bleak and barren was the moor, Ah!
loud and piercing was the storm, The cottage roof was shelter'd sure,
The cottage hearth was bright and warm—An orphan boy the lattice
pass'd, And, as he mark'd its cheerful glow, Felt doubly keen the
midnight blast, And doubly cold the fallen snow.
They mark'd him as he onward prest,
With fainting heart and weary limb; Kind voices bade him turn and
rest, And gentle faces welcomed him. The dawn is up—the guest is
gone, The cottage hearth is blazing still; Heaven pity all poor
wanderers lone! Hark to the wind upon the hill!
It was the sentiment of the
before-mentioned words, "When I'm gone," over again. As she
came to the last words, Miss Sharp's "deep-toned voice
faltered." Everybody felt the allusion to her departure, and to
her hapless orphan state. Joseph Sedley, who was fond of music, and
soft-hearted, was in a state of ravishment during the performance of
the song, and profoundly touched at its conclusion. If he had had the
courage; if George and Miss Sedley had remained, according to the
former's proposal, in the farther room, Joseph Sedley's bachelorhood
would have been at an end, and this work would never have been
written. But at the close of the ditty, Rebecca quitted the piano,
and giving her hand to Amelia, walked away into the front
drawing-room twilight; and, at this moment, Mr. Sambo made his
appearance with a tray, containing sandwiches, jellies, and some
glittering glasses and decanters, on which Joseph Sedley's attention
was immediately fixed. When the parents of the house of Sedley
returned from their dinner-party, they found the young people so busy
in talking, that they had not heard the arrival of the carriage, and
Mr. Joseph was in the act of saying, "My dear Miss Sharp, one
little teaspoonful of jelly to recruit you after your
immense—your—your delightful exertions."
"Bravo, Jos!" said Mr.
Sedley; on hearing the bantering of which well-known voice, Jos
instantly relapsed into an alarmed silence, and quickly took his
departure. He did not lie awake all night thinking whether or not he
was in love with Miss Sharp; the passion of love never interfered
with the appetite or the slumber of Mr. Joseph Sedley; but he thought
to himself how delightful it would be to hear such songs as those
after Cutcherry—what a distinguee girl she was—how she could
speak French better than the Governor- General's lady herself—and
what a sensation she would make at the Calcutta balls. "It's
evident the poor devil's in love with me," thought he. "She
is just as rich as most of the girls who come out to India. I might
go farther, and fare worse, egad!" And in these meditations he
fell asleep.
How Miss Sharp lay awake, thinking,
will he come or not to-morrow? need not be told here. To-morrow came,
and, as sure as fate, Mr. Joseph Sedley made his appearance before
luncheon. He had never been known before to confer such an honour on
Russell Square. George Osborne was somehow there already (sadly
"putting out" Amelia, who was writing to her twelve dearest
friends at Chiswick Mall), and Rebecca was employed upon her
yesterday's work. As Joe's buggy drove up, and while, after his usual
thundering knock and pompous bustle at the door, the ex-Collector of
Boggley Wollah laboured up stairs to the drawing-room, knowing
glances were telegraphed between Osborne and Miss Sedley, and the
pair, smiling archly, looked at Rebecca, who actually blushed as she
bent her fair ringlets over her knitting. How her heart beat as
Joseph appeared— Joseph, puffing from the staircase in shining
creaking boots— Joseph, in a new waistcoat, red with heat and
nervousness, and blushing behind his wadded neckcloth. It was a
nervous moment for all; and as for Amelia, I think she was more
frightened than even the people most concerned.
Sambo, who flung open the door and
announced Mr. Joseph, followed grinning, in the Collector's rear, and
bearing two handsome nosegays of flowers, which the monster had
actually had the gallantry to purchase in Covent Garden Market that
morning—they were not as big as the haystacks which ladies carry
about with them now-a-days, in cones of filigree paper; but the young
women were delighted with the gift, as Joseph presented one to each,
with an exceedingly solemn bow.
"Bravo, Jos!" cried Osborne.
"Thank you, dear Joseph,"
said Amelia, quite ready to kiss her brother, if he were so minded.
(And I think for a kiss from such a dear creature as Amelia, I would
purchase all Mr. Lee's conservatories out of hand.)
"O heavenly, heavenly flowers!"
exclaimed Miss Sharp, and smelt them delicately, and held them to her
bosom, and cast up her eyes to the ceiling, in an ecstasy of
admiration. Perhaps she just looked first into the bouquet, to see
whether there was a billet-doux hidden among the flowers; but there
was no letter.
"Do they talk the language of
flowers at Boggley Wollah, Sedley?" asked Osborne, laughing.
"Pooh, nonsense!" replied the
sentimental youth. "Bought 'em at Nathan's; very glad you like
'em; and eh, Amelia, my dear, I bought a pine-apple at the same time,
which I gave to Sambo. Let's have it for tiffin; very cool and nice
this hot weather." Rebecca said she had never tasted a pine, and
longed beyond everything to taste one.
So the conversation went on. I don't
know on what pretext Osborne left the room, or why, presently, Amelia
went away, perhaps to superintend the slicing of the pine-apple; but
Jos was left alone with Rebecca, who had resumed her work, and the
green silk and the shining needles were quivering rapidly under her
white slender fingers.
"What a beautiful, BYOO-OOTIFUL
song that was you sang last night, dear Miss Sharp," said the
Collector. "It made me cry almost; 'pon my honour it did."
"Because you have a kind heart,
Mr. Joseph; all the Sedleys have, I think."
"It kept me awake last night, and
I was trying to hum it this morning, in bed; I was, upon my honour.
Gollop, my doctor, came in at eleven (for I'm a sad invalid, you
know, and see Gollop every day), and, 'gad! there I was, singing away
like—a robin."
"O you droll creature! Do let me
hear you sing it."
"Me? No, you, Miss Sharp; my dear
Miss Sharp, do sing it." "Not now, Mr. Sedley," said
Rebecca, with a sigh. "My spirits are not equal to it; besides,
I must finish the purse. Will you help me, Mr. Sedley?" And
before he had time to ask how, Mr. Joseph Sedley, of the East India
Company's service, was actually seated tete-a-tete with a young lady,
looking at her with a most killing expression; his arms stretched out
before her in an imploring attitude, and his hands bound in a web of
green silk, which she was unwinding.
In this romantic position Osborne and
Amelia found the interesting pair, when they entered to announce that
tiffin was ready. The skein of silk was just wound round the card;
but Mr. Jos had never spoken.
"I am sure he will to-night,
dear," Amelia said, as she pressed Rebecca's hand; and Sedley,
too, had communed with his soul, and said to himself, "'Gad,
I'll pop the question at Vauxhall."
Chapter V
*
Dobbin of Ours
Cuff's fight with Dobbin, and the
unexpected issue of that contest, will long be remembered by every
man who was educated at Dr. Swishtail's famous school. The latter
Youth (who used to be called Heigh-ho Dobbin, Gee-ho Dobbin, and by
many other names indicative of puerile contempt) was the quietest,
the clumsiest, and, as it seemed, the dullest of all Dr. Swishtail's
young gentlemen. His parent was a grocer in the city: and it was
bruited abroad that he was admitted into Dr. Swishtail's academy upon
what are called "mutual principles"—that is to say, the
expenses of his board and schooling were defrayed by his father in
goods, not money; and he stood there—most at the bottom of the
school—in his scraggy corduroys and jacket, through the seams of
which his great big bones were bursting—as the representative of so
many pounds of tea, candles, sugar, mottled-soap, plums (of which a
very mild proportion was supplied for the puddings of the
establishment), and other commodities. A dreadful day it was for
young Dobbin when one of the youngsters of the school, having run
into the town upon a poaching excursion for hardbake and polonies,
espied the cart of Dobbin & Rudge, Grocers and Oilmen, Thames
Street, London, at the Doctor's door, discharging a cargo of the
wares in which the firm dealt.
Young Dobbin had no peace after that.
The jokes were frightful, and merciless against him. "Hullo,
Dobbin," one wag would say, "here's good news in the paper.
Sugars is ris', my boy." Another would set a sum—"If a
pound of mutton-candles cost sevenpence-halfpenny, how much must
Dobbin cost?" and a roar would follow from all the circle of
young knaves, usher and all, who rightly considered that the selling
of goods by retail is a shameful and infamous practice, meriting the
contempt and scorn of all real gentlemen.
"Your father's only a merchant,
Osborne," Dobbin said in private to the little boy who had
brought down the storm upon him. At which the latter replied
haughtily, "My father's a gentleman, and keeps his carriage";
and Mr. William Dobbin retreated to a remote outhouse in the
playground, where he passed a half-holiday in the bitterest sadness
and woe. Who amongst us is there that does not recollect similar
hours of bitter, bitter childish grief? Who feels injustice; who
shrinks before a slight; who has a sense of wrong so acute, and so
glowing a gratitude for kindness, as a generous boy? and how many of
those gentle souls do you degrade, estrange, torture, for the sake of
a little loose arithmetic, and miserable dog-latin?
Now, William Dobbin, from an incapacity
to acquire the rudiments of the above language, as they are
propounded in that wonderful book the Eton Latin Grammar, was
compelled to remain among the very last of Doctor Swishtail's
scholars, and was "taken down" continually by little
fellows with pink faces and pinafores when he marched up with the
lower form, a giant amongst them, with his downcast, stupefied look,
his dog's-eared primer, and his tight corduroys. High and low, all
made fun of him. They sewed up those corduroys, tight as they were.
They cut his bed-strings. They upset buckets and benches, so that he
might break his shins over them, which he never failed to do. They
sent him parcels, which, when opened, were found to contain the
paternal soap and candles. There was no little fellow but had his
jeer and joke at Dobbin; and he bore everything quite patiently, and
was entirely dumb and miserable.
Cuff, on the contrary, was the great
chief and dandy of the Swishtail Seminary. He smuggled wine in. He
fought the town-boys. Ponies used to come for him to ride home on
Saturdays. He had his top-boots in his room, in which he used to hunt
in the holidays. He had a gold repeater: and took snuff like the
Doctor. He had been to the Opera, and knew the merits of the
principal actors, preferring Mr. Kean to Mr. Kemble. He could knock
you off forty Latin verses in an hour. He could make French poetry.
What else didn't he know, or couldn't he do? They said even the
Doctor himself was afraid of him.
Cuff, the unquestioned king of the
school, ruled over his subjects, and bullied them, with splendid
superiority. This one blacked his shoes: that toasted his bread,
others would fag out, and give him balls at cricket during whole
summer afternoons. "Figs" was the fellow whom he despised
most, and with whom, though always abusing him, and sneering at him,
he scarcely ever condescended to hold personal communication.
One day in private, the two young
gentlemen had had a difference. Figs, alone in the schoolroom, was
blundering over a home letter; when Cuff, entering, bade him go upon
some message, of which tarts were probably the subject.
"I can't," says Dobbin; "I
want to finish my letter."
"You CAN'T?" says Mr. Cuff,
laying hold of that document (in which many words were scratched out,
many were mis-spelt, on which had been spent I don't know how much
thought, and labour, and tears; for the poor fellow was writing to
his mother, who was fond of him, although she was a grocer's wife,
and lived in a back parlour in Thames Street). "You CAN'T?"
says Mr. Cuff: "I should like to know why, pray? Can't you write
to old Mother Figs to-morrow?"
"Don't call names," Dobbin
said, getting off the bench very nervous.
"Well, sir, will you go?"
crowed the cock of the school.
"Put down the letter," Dobbin
replied; "no gentleman readth letterth."
"Well, NOW will you go?" says
the other.
"No, I won't. Don't strike, or
I'll THMASH you," roars out Dobbin, springing to a leaden
inkstand, and looking so wicked, that Mr. Cuff paused, turned down
his coat sleeves again, put his hands into his pockets, and walked
away with a sneer. But he never meddled personally with the grocer's
boy after that; though we must do him the justice to say he always
spoke of Mr. Dobbin with contempt behind his back.
Some time after this interview, it
happened that Mr. Cuff, on a sunshiny afternoon, was in the
neighbourhood of poor William Dobbin, who was lying under a tree in
the playground, spelling over a favourite copy of the Arabian Nights
which he had apart from the rest of the school, who were pursuing
their various sports—quite lonely, and almost happy. If people
would but leave children to themselves; if teachers would cease to
bully them; if parents would not insist upon directing their
thoughts, and dominating their feelings—those feelings and thoughts
which are a mystery to all (for how much do you and I know of each
other, of our children, of our fathers, of our neighbour, and how far
more beautiful and sacred are the thoughts of the poor lad or girl
whom you govern likely to be, than those of the dull and
world-corrupted person who rules him?)—if, I say, parents and
masters would leave their children alone a little more, small harm
would accrue, although a less quantity of as in praesenti might be
acquired.
Well, William Dobbin had for once
forgotten the world, and was away with Sindbad the Sailor in the
Valley of Diamonds, or with Prince Ahmed and the Fairy Peribanou in
that delightful cavern where the Prince found her, and whither we
should all like to make a tour; when shrill cries, as of a little
fellow weeping, woke up his pleasant reverie; and looking up, he saw
Cuff before him, belabouring a little boy.
It was the lad who had peached upon him
about the grocer's cart; but he bore little malice, not at least
towards the young and small. "How dare you, sir, break the
bottle?" says Cuff to the little urchin, swinging a yellow
cricket-stump over him.
The boy had been instructed to get over
the playground wall (at a selected spot where the broken glass had
been removed from the top, and niches made convenient in the brick);
to run a quarter of a mile; to purchase a pint of rum-shrub on
credit; to brave all the Doctor's outlying spies, and to clamber back
into the playground again; during the performance of which feat, his
foot had slipt, and the bottle was broken, and the shrub had been
spilt, and his pantaloons had been damaged, and he appeared before
his employer a perfectly guilty and trembling, though harmless,
wretch.
"How dare you, sir, break it?"
says Cuff; "you blundering little thief. You drank the shrub,
and now you pretend to have broken the bottle. Hold out your hand,
sir."
Down came the stump with a great heavy
thump on the child's hand. A moan followed. Dobbin looked up. The
Fairy Peribanou had fled into the inmost cavern with Prince Ahmed:
the Roc had whisked away Sindbad the Sailor out of the Valley of
Diamonds out of sight, far into the clouds: and there was everyday
life before honest William; and a big boy beating a little one
without cause.
"Hold out your other hand, sir,"
roars Cuff to his little schoolfellow, whose face was distorted with
pain. Dobbin quivered, and gathered himself up in his narrow old
clothes.
"Take that, you little devil!"
cried Mr. Cuff, and down came the wicket again on the child's
hand.—Don't be horrified, ladies, every boy at a public school has
done it. Your children will so do and be done by, in all probability.
Down came the wicket again; and Dobbin started up.
I can't tell what his motive was.
Torture in a public school is as much licensed as the knout in
Russia. It would be ungentlemanlike (in a manner) to resist it.
Perhaps Dobbin's foolish soul revolted against that exercise of
tyranny; or perhaps he had a hankering feeling of revenge in his
mind, and longed to measure himself against that splendid bully and
tyrant, who had all the glory, pride, pomp, circumstance, banners
flying, drums beating, guards saluting, in the place. Whatever may
have been his incentive, however, up he sprang, and screamed out,
"Hold off, Cuff; don't bully that child any more; or I'll—"
"Or you'll what?" Cuff asked
in amazement at this interruption. "Hold out your hand, you
little beast."
"I'll give you the worst thrashing
you ever had in your life," Dobbin said, in reply to the first
part of Cuff's sentence; and little Osborne, gasping and in tears,
looked up with wonder and incredulity at seeing this amazing champion
put up suddenly to defend him: while Cuff's astonishment was scarcely
less. Fancy our late monarch George III when he heard of the revolt
of the North American colonies: fancy brazen Goliath when little
David stepped forward and claimed a meeting; and you have the
feelings of Mr. Reginald Cuff when this rencontre was proposed to
him.
"After school," says he, of
course; after a pause and a look, as much as to say, "Make your
will, and communicate your last wishes to your friends between this
time and that."
"As you please," Dobbin said.
"You must be my bottle holder, Osborne."
"Well, if you like," little
Osborne replied; for you see his papa kept a carriage, and he was
rather ashamed of his champion.
Yes, when the hour of battle came, he
was almost ashamed to say, "Go it, Figs"; and not a single
other boy in the place uttered that cry for the first two or three
rounds of this famous combat; at the commencement of which the
scientific Cuff, with a contemptuous smile on his face, and as light
and as gay as if he was at a ball, planted his blows upon his
adversary, and floored that unlucky champion three times running. At
each fall there was a cheer; and everybody was anxious to have the
honour of offering the conqueror a knee.
"What a licking I shall get when
it's over," young Osborne thought, picking up his man. "You'd
best give in," he said to Dobbin; "it's only a thrashing,
Figs, and you know I'm used to it." But Figs, all whose limbs
were in a quiver, and whose nostrils were breathing rage, put his
little bottle-holder aside, and went in for a fourth time.
As he did not in the least know how to
parry the blows that were aimed at himself, and Cuff had begun the
attack on the three preceding occasions, without ever allowing his
enemy to strike, Figs now determined that he would commence the
engagement by a charge on his own part; and accordingly, being a
left-handed man, brought that arm into action, and hit out a couple
of times with all his might— once at Mr. Cuff's left eye, and once
on his beautiful Roman nose.
Cuff went down this time, to the
astonishment of the assembly. "Well hit, by Jove," says
little Osborne, with the air of a connoisseur, clapping his man on
the back. "Give it him with the left, Figs my boy."
Figs's left made terrific play during
all the rest of the combat. Cuff went down every time. At the sixth
round, there were almost as many fellows shouting out, "Go it,
Figs," as there were youths exclaiming, "Go it, Cuff."
At the twelfth round the latter champion was all abroad, as the
saying is, and had lost all presence of mind and power of attack or
defence. Figs, on the contrary, was as calm as a quaker. His face
being quite pale, his eyes shining open, and a great cut on his
underlip bleeding profusely, gave this young fellow a fierce and
ghastly air, which perhaps struck terror into many spectators.
Nevertheless, his intrepid adversary prepared to close for the
thirteenth time.
If I had the pen of a Napier, or a
Bell's Life, I should like to describe this combat properly. It was
the last charge of the Guard— (that is, it would have been, only
Waterloo had not yet taken place)—it was Ney's column breasting the
hill of La Haye Sainte, bristling with ten thousand bayonets, and
crowned with twenty eagles—it was the shout of the beef-eating
British, as leaping down the hill they rushed to hug the enemy in the
savage arms of battle— in other words, Cuff coming up full of
pluck, but quite reeling and groggy, the Fig-merchant put in his left
as usual on his adversary's nose, and sent him down for the last
time.
"I think that will do for him,"
Figs said, as his opponent dropped as neatly on the green as I have
seen Jack Spot's ball plump into the pocket at billiards; and the
fact is, when time was called, Mr. Reginald Cuff was not able, or did
not choose, to stand up again.
And now all the boys set up such a
shout for Figs as would have made you think he had been their darling
champion through the whole battle; and as absolutely brought Dr.
Swishtail out of his study, curious to know the cause of the uproar.
He threatened to flog Figs violently, of course; but Cuff, who had
come to himself by this time, and was washing his wounds, stood up
and said, "It's my fault, sir—not Figs'—not Dobbin's. I was
bullying a little boy; and he served me right." By which
magnanimous speech he not only saved his conqueror a whipping, but
got back all his ascendancy over the boys which his defeat had nearly
cost him.
Young Osborne wrote home to his parents
an account of the transaction.
Sugarcane House, Richmond, March, 18—
DEAR MAMA,—I hope you are quite well.
I should be much obliged to you to send me a cake and five shillings.
There has been a fight here between Cuff & Dobbin. Cuff, you
know, was the Cock of the School. They fought thirteen rounds, and
Dobbin Licked. So Cuff is now Only Second Cock. The fight was about
me. Cuff was licking me for breaking a bottle of milk, and Figs
wouldn't stand it. We call him Figs because his father is a
Grocer—Figs & Rudge, Thames St., City—I think as he fought
for me you ought to buy your Tea & Sugar at his father's. Cuff
goes home every Saturday, but can't this, because he has 2 Black
Eyes. He has a white Pony to come and fetch him, and a groom in
livery on a bay mare. I wish my Papa would let me have a Pony, and I
am
Your dutiful Son, GEORGE SEDLEY OSBORNE
P.S.—Give my love to little Emmy. I
am cutting her out a Coach in cardboard. Please not a seed-cake, but
a plum-cake.
In consequence of Dobbin's victory, his
character rose prodigiously in the estimation of all his
schoolfellows, and the name of Figs, which had been a byword of
reproach, became as respectable and popular a nickname as any other
in use in the school. "After all, it's not his fault that his
father's a grocer," George Osborne said, who, though a little
chap, had a very high popularity among the Swishtail youth; and his
opinion was received with great applause. It was voted low to sneer
at Dobbin about this accident of birth. "Old Figs" grew to
be a name of kindness and endearment; and the sneak of an usher
jeered at him no longer.
And Dobbin's spirit rose with his
altered circumstances. He made wonderful advances in scholastic
learning. The superb Cuff himself, at whose condescension Dobbin
could only blush and wonder, helped him on with his Latin verses;
"coached" him in play-hours: carried him triumphantly out
of the little-boy class into the middle-sized form; and even there
got a fair place for him. It was discovered, that although dull at
classical learning, at mathematics he was uncommonly quick. To the
contentment of all he passed third in algebra, and got a French
prize-book at the public Midsummer examination. You should have seen
his mother's face when Telemaque (that delicious romance) was
presented to him by the Doctor in the face of the whole school and
the parents and company, with an inscription to Gulielmo Dobbin. All
the boys clapped hands in token of applause and sympathy. His
blushes, his stumbles, his awkwardness, and the number of feet which
he crushed as he went back to his place, who shall describe or
calculate? Old Dobbin, his father, who now respected him for the
first time, gave him two guineas publicly; most of which he spent in
a general tuck-out for the school: and he came back in a tail-coat
after the holidays.
Dobbin was much too modest a young
fellow to suppose that this happy change in all his circumstances
arose from his own generous and manly disposition: he chose, from
some perverseness, to attribute his good fortune to the sole agency
and benevolence of little George Osborne, to whom henceforth he vowed
such a love and affection as is only felt by children—such an
affection, as we read in the charming fairy-book, uncouth Orson had
for splendid young Valentine his conqueror. He flung himself down at
little Osborne's feet, and loved him. Even before they were
acquainted, he had admired Osborne in secret. Now he was his valet,
his dog, his man Friday. He believed Osborne to be the possessor of
every perfection, to be the handsomest, the bravest, the most active,
the cleverest, the most generous of created boys. He shared his money
with him: bought him uncountable presents of knives, pencil-cases,
gold seals, toffee, Little Warblers, and romantic books, with large
coloured pictures of knights and robbers, in many of which latter you
might read inscriptions to George Sedley Osborne, Esquire, from his
attached friend William Dobbin—the which tokens of homage George
received very graciously, as became his superior merit.
So that Lieutenant Osborne, when coming
to Russell Square on the day of the Vauxhall party, said to the
ladies, "Mrs. Sedley, Ma'am, I hope you have room; I've asked
Dobbin of ours to come and dine here, and go with us to Vauxhall.
He's almost as modest as Jos."
"Modesty! pooh," said the
stout gentleman, casting a vainqueur look at Miss Sharp.
"He is—but you are incomparably
more graceful, Sedley," Osborne added, laughing. "I met him
at the Bedford, when I went to look for you; and I told him that Miss
Amelia was come home, and that we were all bent on going out for a
night's pleasuring; and that Mrs. Sedley had forgiven his breaking
the punch-bowl at the child's party. Don't you remember the
catastrophe, Ma'am, seven years ago?"
"Over Mrs. Flamingo's crimson silk
gown," said good-natured Mrs. Sedley. "What a gawky it was!
And his sisters are not much more graceful. Lady Dobbin was at
Highbury last night with three of them. Such figures! my dears."
"The Alderman's very rich, isn't
he?" Osborne said archly. "Don't you think one of the
daughters would be a good spec for me, Ma'am?"
"You foolish creature! Who would
take you, I should like to know, with your yellow face?"
"Mine a yellow face? Stop till you
see Dobbin. Why, he had the yellow fever three times; twice at
Nassau, and once at St. Kitts."
"Well, well; yours is quite yellow
enough for us. Isn't it, Emmy?" Mrs. Sedley said: at which
speech Miss Amelia only made a smile and a blush; and looking at Mr.
George Osborne's pale interesting countenance, and those beautiful
black, curling, shining whiskers, which the young gentleman himself
regarded with no ordinary complacency, she thought in her little
heart that in His Majesty's army, or in the wide world, there never
was such a face or such a hero. "I don't care about Captain
Dobbin's complexion," she said, "or about his awkwardness.
I shall always like him, I know," her little reason being, that
he was the friend and champion of George.
"There's not a finer fellow in the
service," Osborne said, "nor a better officer, though he is
not an Adonis, certainly." And he looked towards the glass
himself with much naivete; and in so doing, caught Miss Sharp's eye
fixed keenly upon him, at which he blushed a little, and Rebecca
thought in her heart, "Ah, mon beau Monsieur! I think I have
YOUR gauge"—the little artful minx!
That evening, when Amelia came tripping
into the drawing-room in a white muslin frock, prepared for conquest
at Vauxhall, singing like a lark, and as fresh as a rose—a very
tall ungainly gentleman, with large hands and feet, and large ears,
set off by a closely cropped head of black hair, and in the hideous
military frogged coat and cocked hat of those times, advanced to meet
her, and made her one of the clumsiest bows that was ever performed
by a mortal.
This was no other than Captain William
Dobbin, of His Majesty's Regiment of Foot, returned from yellow
fever, in the West Indies, to which the fortune of the service had
ordered his regiment, whilst so many of his gallant comrades were
reaping glory in the Peninsula.
He had arrived with a knock so very
timid and quiet that it was inaudible to the ladies upstairs:
otherwise, you may be sure Miss Amelia would never have been so bold
as to come singing into the room. As it was, the sweet fresh little
voice went right into the Captain's heart, and nestled there. When
she held out her hand for him to shake, before he enveloped it in his
own, he paused, and thought—"Well, is it possible—are you
the little maid I remember in the pink frock, such a short time
ago—the night I upset the punch-bowl, just after I was gazetted?
Are you the little girl that George Osborne said should marry him?
What a blooming young creature you seem, and what a prize the rogue
has got!" All this he thought, before he took Amelia's hand into
his own, and as he let his cocked hat fall.
His history since he left school, until
the very moment when we have the pleasure of meeting him again,
although not fully narrated, has yet, I think, been indicated
sufficiently for an ingenious reader by the conversation in the last
page. Dobbin, the despised grocer, was Alderman Dobbin—Alderman
Dobbin was Colonel of the City Light Horse, then burning with
military ardour to resist the French Invasion. Colonel Dobbin's
corps, in which old Mr. Osborne himself was but an indifferent
corporal, had been reviewed by the Sovereign and the Duke of York;
and the colonel and alderman had been knighted. His son had entered
the army: and young Osborne followed presently in the same regiment.
They had served in the West Indies and in Canada. Their regiment had
just come home, and the attachment of Dobbin to George Osborne was as
warm and generous now as it had been when the two were schoolboys.
So these worthy people sat down to
dinner presently. They talked about war and glory, and Boney and Lord
Wellington, and the last Gazette. In those famous days every gazette
had a victory in it, and the two gallant young men longed to see
their own names in the glorious list, and cursed their unlucky fate
to belong to a regiment which had been away from the chances of
honour. Miss Sharp kindled with this exciting talk, but Miss Sedley
trembled and grew quite faint as she heard it. Mr. Jos told several
of his tiger-hunting stories, finished the one about Miss Cutler and
Lance the surgeon; helped Rebecca to everything on the table, and
himself gobbled and drank a great deal.
He sprang to open the door for the
ladies, when they retired, with the most killing grace—and coming
back to the table, filled himself bumper after bumper of claret,
which he swallowed with nervous rapidity.
"He's priming himself,"
Osborne whispered to Dobbin, and at length the hour and the carriage
arrived for Vauxhall.
Chapter VI
*
Vauxhall
I know that the tune I am piping is a
very mild one (although there are some terrific chapters coming
presently), and must beg the good- natured reader to remember that we
are only discoursing at present about a stockbroker's family in
Russell Square, who are taking walks, or luncheon, or dinner, or
talking and making love as people do in common life, and without a
single passionate and wonderful incident to mark the progress of
their loves. The argument stands thus—Osborne, in love with Amelia,
has asked an old friend to dinner and to Vauxhall—Jos Sedley is in
love with Rebecca. Will he marry her? That is the great subject now
in hand.
We might have treated this subject in
the genteel, or in the romantic, or in the facetious manner. Suppose
we had laid the scene in Grosvenor Square, with the very same
adventures—would not some people have listened? Suppose we had
shown how Lord Joseph Sedley fell in love, and the Marquis of Osborne
became attached to Lady Amelia, with the full consent of the Duke,
her noble father: or instead of the supremely genteel, suppose we had
resorted to the entirely low, and described what was going on in Mr.
Sedley's kitchen—how black Sambo was in love with the cook (as
indeed he was), and how he fought a battle with the coachman in her
behalf; how the knife-boy was caught stealing a cold shoulder of
mutton, and Miss Sedley's new femme de chambre refused to go to bed
without a wax candle; such incidents might be made to provoke much
delightful laughter, and be supposed to represent scenes of "life."
Or if, on the contrary, we had taken a fancy for the terrible, and
made the lover of the new femme de chambre a professional burglar,
who bursts into the house with his band, slaughters black Sambo at
the feet of his master, and carries off Amelia in her night-dress,
not to be let loose again till the third volume, we should easily
have constructed a tale of thrilling interest, through the fiery
chapters of which the reader should hurry, panting. But my readers
must hope for no such romance, only a homely story, and must be
content with a chapter about Vauxhall, which is so short that it
scarce deserves to be called a chapter at all. And yet it is a
chapter, and a very important one too. Are not there little chapters
in everybody's life, that seem to be nothing, and yet affect all the
rest of the history?
Let us then step into the coach with
the Russell Square party, and be off to the Gardens. There is barely
room between Jos and Miss Sharp, who are on the front seat. Mr.
Osborne sitting bodkin opposite, between Captain Dobbin and Amelia.
Every soul in the coach agreed that on
that night Jos would propose to make Rebecca Sharp Mrs. Sedley. The
parents at home had acquiesced in the arrangement, though, between
ourselves, old Mr. Sedley had a feeling very much akin to contempt
for his son. He said he was vain, selfish, lazy, and effeminate. He
could not endure his airs as a man of fashion, and laughed heartily
at his pompous braggadocio stories. "I shall leave the fellow
half my property," he said; "and he will have, besides,
plenty of his own; but as I am perfectly sure that if you, and I, and
his sister were to die to-morrow, he would say 'Good Gad!' and eat
his dinner just as well as usual, I am not going to make myself
anxious about him. Let him marry whom he likes. It's no affair of
mine."
Amelia, on the other hand, as became a
young woman of her prudence and temperament, was quite enthusiastic
for the match. Once or twice Jos had been on the point of saying
something very important to her, to which she was most willing to
lend an ear, but the fat fellow could not be brought to unbosom
himself of his great secret, and very much to his sister's
disappointment he only rid himself of a large sigh and turned away.
This mystery served to keep Amelia's
gentle bosom in a perpetual flutter of excitement. If she did not
speak with Rebecca on the tender subject, she compensated herself
with long and intimate conversations with Mrs. Blenkinsop, the
housekeeper, who dropped some hints to the lady's-maid, who may have
cursorily mentioned the matter to the cook, who carried the news, I
have no doubt, to all the tradesmen, so that Mr. Jos's marriage was
now talked of by a very considerable number of persons in the Russell
Square world.
It was, of course, Mrs. Sedley's
opinion that her son would demean himself by a marriage with an
artist's daughter. "But, lor', Ma'am," ejaculated Mrs.
Blenkinsop, "we was only grocers when we married Mr. S., who was
a stock-broker's clerk, and we hadn't five hundred pounds among us,
and we're rich enough now." And Amelia was entirely of this
opinion, to which, gradually, the good-natured Mrs. Sedley was
brought.
Mr. Sedley was neutral. "Let Jos
marry whom he likes," he said; "it's no affair of mine.
This girl has no fortune; no more had Mrs. Sedley. She seems
good-humoured and clever, and will keep him in order, perhaps. Better
she, my dear, than a black Mrs. Sedley, and a dozen of mahogany
grandchildren."
So that everything seemed to smile upon
Rebecca's fortunes. She took Jos's arm, as a matter of course, on
going to dinner; she had sate by him on the box of his open carriage
(a most tremendous "buck" he was, as he sat there, serene,
in state, driving his greys), and though nobody said a word on the
subject of the marriage, everybody seemed to understand it. All she
wanted was the proposal, and ah! how Rebecca now felt the want of a
mother!—a dear, tender mother, who would have managed the business
in ten minutes, and, in the course of a little delicate confidential
conversation, would have extracted the interesting avowal from the
bashful lips of the young man!
Such was the state of affairs as the
carriage crossed Westminster bridge.
The party was landed at the Royal
Gardens in due time. As the majestic Jos stepped out of the creaking
vehicle the crowd gave a cheer for the fat gentleman, who blushed and
looked very big and mighty, as he walked away with Rebecca under his
arm. George, of course, took charge of Amelia. She looked as happy as
a rose-tree in sunshine.
"I say, Dobbin," says George,
"just look to the shawls and things, there's a good fellow."
And so while he paired off with Miss Sedley, and Jos squeezed through
the gate into the gardens with Rebecca at his side, honest Dobbin
contented himself by giving an arm to the shawls, and by paying at
the door for the whole party.
He walked very modestly behind them. He
was not willing to spoil sport. About Rebecca and Jos he did not care
a fig. But he thought Amelia worthy even of the brilliant George
Osborne, and as he saw that good-looking couple threading the walks
to the girl's delight and wonder, he watched her artless happiness
with a sort of fatherly pleasure. Perhaps he felt that he would have
liked to have something on his own arm besides a shawl (the people
laughed at seeing the gawky young officer carrying this female
burthen); but William Dobbin was very little addicted to selfish
calculation at all; and so long as his friend was enjoying himself,
how should he be discontented? And the truth is, that of all the
delights of the Gardens; of the hundred thousand extra lamps, which
were always lighted; the fiddlers in cocked hats, who played
ravishing melodies under the gilded cockle-shell in the midst of the
gardens; the singers, both of comic and sentimental ballads, who
charmed the ears there; the country dances, formed by bouncing
cockneys and cockneyesses, and executed amidst jumping, thumping and
laughter; the signal which announced that Madame Saqui was about to
mount skyward on a slack-rope ascending to the stars; the hermit that
always sat in the illuminated hermitage; the dark walks, so
favourable to the interviews of young lovers; the pots of stout
handed about by the people in the shabby old liveries; and the
twinkling boxes, in which the happy feasters made-believe to eat
slices of almost invisible ham—of all these things, and of the
gentle Simpson, that kind smiling idiot, who, I daresay, presided
even then over the place—Captain William Dobbin did not take the
slightest notice.
He carried about Amelia's white
cashmere shawl, and having attended under the gilt cockle-shell,
while Mrs. Salmon performed the Battle of Borodino (a savage cantata
against the Corsican upstart, who had lately met with his Russian
reverses)—Mr. Dobbin tried to hum it as he walked away, and found
he was humming—the tune which Amelia Sedley sang on the stairs, as
she came down to dinner.
He burst out laughing at himself; for
the truth is, he could sing no better than an owl.
It is to be understood, as a matter of
course, that our young people, being in parties of two and two, made
the most solemn promises to keep together during the evening, and
separated in ten minutes afterwards. Parties at Vauxhall always did
separate, but 'twas only to meet again at supper-time, when they
could talk of their mutual adventures in the interval.
What were the adventures of Mr. Osborne
and Miss Amelia? That is a secret. But be sure of this—they were
perfectly happy, and correct in their behaviour; and as they had been
in the habit of being together any time these fifteen years, their
tete-a-tete offered no particular novelty.
But when Miss Rebecca Sharp and her
stout companion lost themselves in a solitary walk, in which there
were not above five score more of couples similarly straying, they
both felt that the situation was extremely tender and critical, and
now or never was the moment Miss Sharp thought, to provoke that
declaration which was trembling on the timid lips of Mr. Sedley. They
had previously been to the panorama of Moscow, where a rude fellow,
treading on Miss Sharp's foot, caused her to fall back with a little
shriek into the arms of Mr. Sedley, and this little incident
increased the tenderness and confidence of that gentleman to such a
degree, that he told her several of his favourite Indian stories over
again for, at least, the sixth time.
"How I should like to see India!"
said Rebecca.
"SHOULD you?" said Joseph,
with a most killing tenderness; and was no doubt about to follow up
this artful interrogatory by a question still more tender (for he
puffed and panted a great deal, and Rebecca's hand, which was placed
near his heart, could count the feverish pulsations of that organ),
when, oh, provoking! the bell rang for the fireworks, and, a great
scuffling and running taking place, these interesting lovers were
obliged to follow in the stream of people.
Captain Dobbin had some thoughts of
joining the party at supper: as, in truth, he found the Vauxhall
amusements not particularly lively— but he paraded twice before the
box where the now united couples were met, and nobody took any notice
of him. Covers were laid for four. The mated pairs were prattling
away quite happily, and Dobbin knew he was as clean forgotten as if
he had never existed in this world.
"I should only be de trop,"
said the Captain, looking at them rather wistfully. "I'd best go
and talk to the hermit,"—and so he strolled off out of the hum
of men, and noise, and clatter of the banquet, into the dark walk, at
the end of which lived that well- known pasteboard Solitary. It
wasn't very good fun for Dobbin—and, indeed, to be alone at
Vauxhall, I have found, from my own experience, to be one of the most
dismal sports ever entered into by a bachelor.
The two couples were perfectly happy
then in their box: where the most delightful and intimate
conversation took place. Jos was in his glory, ordering about the
waiters with great majesty. He made the salad; and uncorked the
Champagne; and carved the chickens; and ate and drank the greater
part of the refreshments on the tables. Finally, he insisted upon
having a bowl of rack punch; everybody had rack punch at Vauxhall.
"Waiter, rack punch."
That bowl of rack punch was the cause
of all this history. And why not a bowl of rack punch as well as any
other cause? Was not a bowl of prussic acid the cause of Fair
Rosamond's retiring from the world? Was not a bowl of wine the cause
of the demise of Alexander the Great, or, at least, does not Dr.
Lempriere say so?—so did this bowl of rack punch influence the
fates of all the principal characters in this "Novel without a
Hero," which we are now relating. It influenced their life,
although most of them did not taste a drop of it.
The young ladies did not drink it;
Osborne did not like it; and the consequence was that Jos, that fat
gourmand, drank up the whole contents of the bowl; and the
consequence of his drinking up the whole contents of the bowl was a
liveliness which at first was astonishing, and then became almost
painful; for he talked and laughed so loud as to bring scores of
listeners round the box, much to the confusion of the innocent party
within it; and, volunteering to sing a song (which he did in that
maudlin high key peculiar to gentlemen in an inebriated state), he
almost drew away the audience who were gathered round the musicians
in the gilt scollop-shell, and received from his hearers a great deal
of applause.
"Brayvo, Fat un!" said one;
"Angcore, Daniel Lambert!" said another; "What a
figure for the tight-rope!" exclaimed another wag, to the
inexpressible alarm of the ladies, and the great anger of Mr.
Osborne.
"For Heaven's sake, Jos, let us
get up and go," cried that gentleman, and the young women rose.
"Stop, my dearest
diddle-diddle-darling," shouted Jos, now as bold as a lion, and
clasping Miss Rebecca round the waist. Rebecca started, but she could
not get away her hand. The laughter outside redoubled. Jos continued
to drink, to make love, and to sing; and, winking and waving his
glass gracefully to his audience, challenged all or any to come in
and take a share of his punch.
Mr. Osborne was just on the point of
knocking down a gentleman in top-boots, who proposed to take
advantage of this invitation, and a commotion seemed to be
inevitable, when by the greatest good luck a gentleman of the name of
Dobbin, who had been walking about the gardens, stepped up to the
box. "Be off, you fools!" said this gentleman—shouldering
off a great number of the crowd, who vanished presently before his
cocked hat and fierce appearance—and he entered the box in a most
agitated state.
"Good Heavens! Dobbin, where have
you been?" Osborne said, seizing the white cashmere shawl from
his friend's arm, and huddling up Amelia in it.—"Make yourself
useful, and take charge of Jos here, whilst I take the ladies to the
carriage."
Jos was for rising to interfere—but a
single push from Osborne's finger sent him puffing back into his seat
again, and the lieutenant was enabled to remove the ladies in safety.
Jos kissed his hand to them as they retreated, and hiccupped out
"Bless you! Bless you!" Then, seizing Captain Dobbin's
hand, and weeping in the most pitiful way, he confided to that
gentleman the secret of his loves. He adored that girl who had just
gone out; he had broken her heart, he knew he had, by his conduct; he
would marry her next morning at St. George's, Hanover Square; he'd
knock up the Archbishop of Canterbury at Lambeth: he would, by Jove!
and have him in readiness; and, acting on this hint, Captain Dobbin
shrewdly induced him to leave the gardens and hasten to Lambeth
Palace, and, when once out of the gates, easily conveyed Mr. Jos
Sedley into a hackney-coach, which deposited him safely at his
lodgings.
George Osborne conducted the girls home
in safety: and when the door was closed upon them, and as he walked
across Russell Square, laughed so as to astonish the watchman. Amelia
looked very ruefully at her friend, as they went up stairs, and
kissed her, and went to bed without any more talking.
"He must propose to-morrow,"
thought Rebecca. "He called me his soul's darling, four times;
he squeezed my hand in Amelia's presence. He must propose to-morrow."
And so thought Amelia, too. And I dare say she thought of the dress
she was to wear as bridesmaid, and of the presents which she should
make to her nice little sister-in-law, and of a subsequent ceremony
in which she herself might play a principal part, &c., and &c.,
and &c., and &c.
Oh, ignorant young creatures! How
little do you know the effect of rack punch! What is the rack in the
punch, at night, to the rack in the head of a morning? To this truth
I can vouch as a man; there is no headache in the world like that
caused by Vauxhall punch. Through the lapse of twenty years, I can
remember the consequence of two glasses! two wine-glasses! but two,
upon the honour of a gentleman; and Joseph Sedley, who had a liver
complaint, had swallowed at least a quart of the abominable mixture.
That next morning, which Rebecca
thought was to dawn upon her fortune, found Sedley groaning in
agonies which the pen refuses to describe. Soda-water was not
invented yet. Small beer—will it be believed!—was the only drink
with which unhappy gentlemen soothed the fever of their previous
night's potation. With this mild beverage before him, George Osborne
found the ex-Collector of Boggley Wollah groaning on the sofa at his
lodgings. Dobbin was already in the room, good-naturedly tending his
patient of the night before. The two officers, looking at the
prostrate Bacchanalian, and askance at each other, exchanged the most
frightful sympathetic grins. Even Sedley's valet, the most solemn and
correct of gentlemen, with the muteness and gravity of an undertaker,
could hardly keep his countenance in order, as he looked at his
unfortunate master.
"Mr. Sedley was uncommon wild last
night, sir," he whispered in confidence to Osborne, as the
latter mounted the stair. "He wanted to fight the
'ackney-coachman, sir. The Capting was obliged to bring him upstairs
in his harms like a babby." A momentary smile flickered over Mr.
Brush's features as he spoke; instantly, however, they relapsed into
their usual unfathomable calm, as he flung open the drawing-room
door, and announced "Mr. Hosbin."
"How are you, Sedley?" that
young wag began, after surveying his victim. "No bones broke?
There's a hackney-coachman downstairs with a black eye, and a tied-up
head, vowing he'll have the law of you."
"What do you mean—law?"
Sedley faintly asked.
"For thrashing him last
night—didn't he, Dobbin? You hit out, sir, like Molyneux. The
watchman says he never saw a fellow go down so straight. Ask Dobbin."
"You DID have a round with the
coachman," Captain Dobbin said, "and showed plenty of fight
too."
"And that fellow with the white
coat at Vauxhall! How Jos drove at him! How the women screamed! By
Jove, sir, it did my heart good to see you. I thought you civilians
had no pluck; but I'll never get in your way when you are in your
cups, Jos."
"I believe I'm very terrible, when
I'm roused," ejaculated Jos from the sofa, and made a grimace so
dreary and ludicrous, that the Captain's politeness could restrain
him no longer, and he and Osborne fired off a ringing volley of
laughter.
Osborne pursued his advantage
pitilessly. He thought Jos a milksop. He had been revolving in his
mind the marriage question pending between Jos and Rebecca, and was
not over well pleased that a member of a family into which he, George
Osborne, of the —th, was going to marry, should make a mesalliance
with a little nobody—a little upstart governess. "You hit, you
poor old fellow!" said Osborne. "You terrible! Why, man,
you couldn't stand—you made everybody laugh in the Gardens, though
you were crying yourself. You were maudlin, Jos. Don't you remember
singing a song?"
"A what?" Jos asked.
"A sentimental song, and calling
Rosa, Rebecca, what's her name, Amelia's little friend—your dearest
diddle-diddle-darling?" And this ruthless young fellow, seizing
hold of Dobbin's hand, acted over the scene, to the horror of the
original performer, and in spite of Dobbin's good-natured entreaties
to him to have mercy.
"Why should I spare him?"
Osborne said to his friend's remonstrances, when they quitted the
invalid, leaving him under the hands of Doctor Gollop. "What the
deuce right has he to give himself his patronizing airs, and make
fools of us at Vauxhall? Who's this little schoolgirl that is ogling
and making love to him? Hang it, the family's low enough already,
without HER. A governess is all very well, but I'd rather have a lady
for my sister-in-law. I'm a liberal man; but I've proper pride, and
know my own station: let her know hers. And I'll take down that great
hectoring Nabob, and prevent him from being made a greater fool than
he is. That's why I told him to look out, lest she brought an action
against him."
"I suppose you know best,"
Dobbin said, though rather dubiously. "You always were a Tory,
and your family's one of the oldest in England. But—"
"Come and see the girls, and make
love to Miss Sharp yourself," the lieutenant here interrupted
his friend; but Captain Dobbin declined to join Osborne in his daily
visit to the young ladies in Russell Square.
As George walked down Southampton Row,
from Holborn, he laughed as he saw, at the Sedley Mansion, in two
different stories two heads on the look-out.
The fact is, Miss Amelia, in the
drawing-room balcony, was looking very eagerly towards the opposite
side of the Square, where Mr. Osborne dwelt, on the watch for the
lieutenant himself; and Miss Sharp, from her little bed-room on the
second floor, was in observation until Mr. Joseph's great form should
heave in sight.
"Sister Anne is on the
watch-tower," said he to Amelia, "but there's nobody
coming"; and laughing and enjoying the joke hugely, he described
in the most ludicrous terms to Miss Sedley, the dismal condition of
her brother.
"I think it's very cruel of you to
laugh, George," she said, looking particularly unhappy; but
George only laughed the more at her piteous and discomfited mien,
persisted in thinking the joke a most diverting one, and when Miss
Sharp came downstairs, bantered her with a great deal of liveliness
upon the effect of her charms on the fat civilian.
"O Miss Sharp! if you could but
see him this morning," he said— "moaning in his flowered
dressing-gown—writhing on his sofa; if you could but have seen him
lolling out his tongue to Gollop the apothecary."
"See whom?" said Miss Sharp.
"Whom? O whom? Captain Dobbin, of
course, to whom we were all so attentive, by the way, last night."
"We were very unkind to him,"
Emmy said, blushing very much. "I—I quite forgot him."
"Of course you did," cried
Osborne, still on the laugh.
"One can't be ALWAYS thinking
about Dobbin, you know, Amelia. Can one, Miss Sharp?"
"Except when he overset the glass
of wine at dinner," Miss Sharp said, with a haughty air and a
toss of the head, "I never gave the existence of Captain Dobbin
one single moment's consideration."
"Very good, Miss Sharp, I'll tell
him," Osborne said; and as he spoke Miss Sharp began to have a
feeling of distrust and hatred towards this young officer, which he
was quite unconscious of having inspired. "He is to make fun of
me, is he?" thought Rebecca. "Has he been laughing about me
to Joseph? Has he frightened him? Perhaps he won't come."—A
film passed over her eyes, and her heart beat quite quick.
"You're always joking," said
she, smiling as innocently as she could. "Joke away, Mr. George;
there's nobody to defend ME." And George Osborne, as she walked
away—and Amelia looked reprovingly at him—felt some little manly
compunction for having inflicted any unnecessary unkindness upon this
helpless creature. "My dearest Amelia," said he, "you
are too good—too kind. You don't know the world. I do. And your
little friend Miss Sharp must learn her station."
"Don't you think Jos will—"
"Upon my word, my dear, I don't
know. He may, or may not. I'm not his master. I only know he is a
very foolish vain fellow, and put my dear little girl into a very
painful and awkward position last night. My dearest
diddle-diddle-darling!" He was off laughing again, and he did it
so drolly that Emmy laughed too.
All that day Jos never came. But Amelia
had no fear about this; for the little schemer had actually sent away
the page, Mr. Sambo's aide-de-camp, to Mr. Joseph's lodgings, to ask
for some book he had promised, and how he was; and the reply through
Jos's man, Mr. Brush, was, that his master was ill in bed, and had
just had the doctor with him. He must come to-morrow, she thought,
but she never had the courage to speak a word on the subject to
Rebecca; nor did that young woman herself allude to it in any way
during the whole evening after the night at Vauxhall.
The next day, however, as the two young
ladies sate on the sofa, pretending to work, or to write letters, or
to read novels, Sambo came into the room with his usual engaging
grin, with a packet under his arm, and a note on a tray. "Note
from Mr. Jos, Miss," says Sambo.
How Amelia trembled as she opened it!
So it ran:
Dear Amelia,—I send you the "Orphan
of the Forest." I was too ill to come yesterday. I leave town
to-day for Cheltenham. Pray excuse me, if you can, to the amiable
Miss Sharp, for my conduct at Vauxhall, and entreat her to pardon and
forget every word I may have uttered when excited by that fatal
supper. As soon as I have recovered, for my health is very much
shaken, I shall go to Scotland for some months, and am
Truly yours, Jos Sedley
It was the death-warrant. All was over.
Amelia did not dare to look at Rebecca's pale face and burning eyes,
but she dropt the letter into her friend's lap; and got up, and went
upstairs to her room, and cried her little heart out.
Blenkinsop, the housekeeper, there
sought her presently with consolation, on whose shoulder Amelia wept
confidentially, and relieved herself a good deal. "Don't take
on, Miss. I didn't like to tell you. But none of us in the house have
liked her except at fust. I sor her with my own eyes reading your
Ma's letters. Pinner says she's always about your trinket-box and
drawers, and everybody's drawers, and she's sure she's put your white
ribbing into her box."
"I gave it her, I gave it her,"
Amelia said.
But this did not alter Mrs.
Blenkinsop's opinion of Miss Sharp. "I don't trust them
governesses, Pinner," she remarked to the maid. "They give
themselves the hairs and hupstarts of ladies, and their wages is no
better than you nor me."
It now became clear to every soul in
the house, except poor Amelia, that Rebecca should take her
departure, and high and low (always with the one exception) agreed
that that event should take place as speedily as possible. Our good
child ransacked all her drawers, cupboards, reticules, and gimcrack
boxes—passed in review all her gowns, fichus, tags, bobbins, laces,
silk stockings, and fallals— selecting this thing and that and the
other, to make a little heap for Rebecca. And going to her Papa, that
generous British merchant, who had promised to give her as many
guineas as she was years old— she begged the old gentleman to give
the money to dear Rebecca, who must want it, while she lacked for
nothing.
She even made George Osborne
contribute, and nothing loth (for he was as free-handed a young
fellow as any in the army), he went to Bond Street, and bought the
best hat and spenser that money could buy.
"That's George's present to you,
Rebecca, dear," said Amelia, quite proud of the bandbox
conveying these gifts. "What a taste he has! There's nobody like
him."
"Nobody," Rebecca answered.
"How thankful I am to him!" She was thinking in her heart,
"It was George Osborne who prevented my marriage."—And
she loved George Osborne accordingly.
She made her preparations for departure
with great equanimity; and accepted all the kind little Amelia's
presents, after just the proper degree of hesitation and reluctance.
She vowed eternal gratitude to Mrs. Sedley, of course; but did not
intrude herself upon that good lady too much, who was embarrassed,
and evidently wishing to avoid her. She kissed Mr. Sedley's hand,
when he presented her with the purse; and asked permission to
consider him for the future as her kind, kind friend and protector.
Her behaviour was so affecting that he was going to write her a
cheque for twenty pounds more; but he restrained his feelings: the
carriage was in waiting to take him to dinner, so he tripped away
with a "God bless you, my dear, always come here when you come
to town, you know.—Drive to the Mansion House, James."
Finally came the parting with Miss
Amelia, over which picture I intend to throw a veil. But after a
scene in which one person was in earnest and the other a perfect
performer—after the tenderest caresses, the most pathetic tears,
the smelling-bottle, and some of the very best feelings of the heart,
had been called into requisition—Rebecca and Amelia parted, the
former vowing to love her friend for ever and ever and ever.
Chapter VII
*
Crawley of Queen's Crawley
Among the most respected of the names
beginning in C which the Court-Guide contained, in the year 18—,
was that of Crawley, Sir Pitt, Baronet, Great Gaunt Street, and
Queen's Crawley, Hants. This honourable name had figured constantly
also in the Parliamentary list for many years, in conjunction with
that of a number of other worthy gentlemen who sat in turns for the
borough.
It is related, with regard to the
borough of Queen's Crawley, that Queen Elizabeth in one of her
progresses, stopping at Crawley to breakfast, was so delighted with
some remarkably fine Hampshire beer which was then presented to her
by the Crawley of the day (a handsome gentleman with a trim beard and
a good leg), that she forthwith erected Crawley into a borough to
send two members to Parliament; and the place, from the day of that
illustrious visit, took the name of Queen's Crawley, which it holds
up to the present moment. And though, by the lapse of time, and those
mutations which age produces in empires, cities, and boroughs,
Queen's Crawley was no longer so populous a place as it had been in
Queen Bess's time— nay, was come down to that condition of borough
which used to be denominated rotten—yet, as Sir Pitt Crawley would
say with perfect justice in his elegant way, "Rotten! be
hanged—it produces me a good fifteen hundred a year."
Sir Pitt Crawley (named after the great
Commoner) was the son of Walpole Crawley, first Baronet, of the Tape
and Sealing-Wax Office in the reign of George II., when he was
impeached for peculation, as were a great number of other honest
gentlemen of those days; and Walpole Crawley was, as need scarcely be
said, son of John Churchill Crawley, named after the celebrated
military commander of the reign of Queen Anne. The family tree (which
hangs up at Queen's Crawley) furthermore mentions Charles Stuart,
afterwards called Barebones Crawley, son of the Crawley of James the
First's time; and finally, Queen Elizabeth's Crawley, who is
represented as the foreground of the picture in his forked beard and
armour. Out of his waistcoat, as usual, grows a tree, on the main
branches of which the above illustrious names are inscribed. Close by
the name of Sir Pitt Crawley, Baronet (the subject of the present
memoir), are written that of his brother, the Reverend Bute Crawley
(the great Commoner was in disgrace when the reverend gentleman was
born), rector of Crawley-cum-Snailby, and of various other male and
female members of the Crawley family.
Sir Pitt was first married to Grizzel,
sixth daughter of Mungo Binkie, Lord Binkie, and cousin, in
consequence, of Mr. Dundas. She brought him two sons: Pitt, named not
so much after his father as after the heaven-born minister; and
Rawdon Crawley, from the Prince of Wales's friend, whom his Majesty
George IV forgot so completely. Many years after her ladyship's
demise, Sir Pitt led to the altar Rosa, daughter of Mr. G. Dawson, of
Mudbury, by whom he had two daughters, for whose benefit Miss Rebecca
Sharp was now engaged as governess. It will be seen that the young
lady was come into a family of very genteel connexions, and was about
to move in a much more distinguished circle than that humble one
which she had just quitted in Russell Square.
She had received her orders to join her
pupils, in a note which was written upon an old envelope, and which
contained the following words:
Sir Pitt Crawley begs Miss Sharp and
baggidge may be hear on Tuesday, as I leaf for Queen's Crawley
to-morrow morning ERLY.
Great Gaunt Street.
Rebecca had never seen a Baronet, as
far as she knew, and as soon as she had taken leave of Amelia, and
counted the guineas which good- natured Mr. Sedley had put into a
purse for her, and as soon as she had done wiping her eyes with her
handkerchief (which operation she concluded the very moment the
carriage had turned the corner of the street), she began to depict in
her own mind what a Baronet must be. "I wonder, does he wear a
star?" thought she, "or is it only lords that wear stars?
But he will be very handsomely dressed in a court suit, with ruffles,
and his hair a little powdered, like Mr. Wroughton at Covent Garden.
I suppose he will be awfully proud, and that I shall be treated most
contemptuously. Still I must bear my hard lot as well as I can—at
least, I shall be amongst GENTLEFOLKS, and not with vulgar city
people": and she fell to thinking of her Russell Square friends
with that very same philosophical bitterness with which, in a certain
apologue, the fox is represented as speaking of the grapes.
Having passed through Gaunt Square into
Great Gaunt Street, the carriage at length stopped at a tall gloomy
house between two other tall gloomy houses, each with a hatchment
over the middle drawing- room window; as is the custom of houses in
Great Gaunt Street, in which gloomy locality death seems to reign
perpetual. The shutters of the first-floor windows of Sir Pitt's
mansion were closed—those of the dining-room were partially open,
and the blinds neatly covered up in old newspapers.
John, the groom, who had driven the
carriage alone, did not care to descend to ring the bell; and so
prayed a passing milk-boy to perform that office for him. When the
bell was rung, a head appeared between the interstices of the
dining-room shutters, and the door was opened by a man in drab
breeches and gaiters, with a dirty old coat, a foul old neckcloth
lashed round his bristly neck, a shining bald head, a leering red
face, a pair of twinkling grey eyes, and a mouth perpetually on the
grin.
"This Sir Pitt Crawley's?"
says John, from the box.
"Ees," says the man at the
door, with a nod.
"Hand down these 'ere trunks
then," said John.
"Hand 'n down yourself," said
the porter.
"Don't you see I can't leave my
hosses? Come, bear a hand, my fine feller, and Miss will give you
some beer," said John, with a horse- laugh, for he was no longer
respectful to Miss Sharp, as her connexion with the family was broken
off, and as she had given nothing to the servants on coming away.
The bald-headed man, taking his hands
out of his breeches pockets, advanced on this summons, and throwing
Miss Sharp's trunk over his shoulder, carried it into the house.
"Take this basket and shawl, if
you please, and open the door," said Miss Sharp, and descended
from the carriage in much indignation. "I shall write to Mr.
Sedley and inform him of your conduct," said she to the groom.
"Don't," replied that
functionary. "I hope you've forgot nothink? Miss 'Melia's
gownds—have you got them—as the lady's maid was to have 'ad? I
hope they'll fit you. Shut the door, Jim, you'll get no good out of
'ER," continued John, pointing with his thumb towards Miss
Sharp: "a bad lot, I tell you, a bad lot," and so saying,
Mr. Sedley's groom drove away. The truth is, he was attached to the
lady's maid in question, and indignant that she should have been
robbed of her perquisites.
On entering the dining-room, by the
orders of the individual in gaiters, Rebecca found that apartment not
more cheerful than such rooms usually are, when genteel families are
out of town. The faithful chambers seem, as it were, to mourn the
absence of their masters. The turkey carpet has rolled itself up, and
retired sulkily under the sideboard: the pictures have hidden their
faces behind old sheets of brown paper: the ceiling lamp is muffled
up in a dismal sack of brown holland: the window-curtains have
disappeared under all sorts of shabby envelopes: the marble bust of
Sir Walpole Crawley is looking from its black corner at the bare
boards and the oiled fire-irons, and the empty card-racks over the
mantelpiece: the cellaret has lurked away behind the carpet: the
chairs are turned up heads and tails along the walls: and in the dark
corner opposite the statue, is an old-fashioned crabbed knife-box,
locked and sitting on a dumb waiter.
Two kitchen chairs, and a round table,
and an attenuated old poker and tongs were, however, gathered round
the fire-place, as was a saucepan over a feeble sputtering fire.
There was a bit of cheese and bread, and a tin candlestick on the
table, and a little black porter in a pint-pot.
"Had your dinner, I suppose? It is
not too warm for you? Like a drop of beer?"
"Where is Sir Pitt Crawley?"
said Miss Sharp majestically.
"He, he! I'm Sir Pitt Crawley.
Reklect you owe me a pint for bringing down your luggage. He, he! Ask
Tinker if I aynt. Mrs. Tinker, Miss Sharp; Miss Governess, Mrs.
Charwoman. Ho, ho!"
The lady addressed as Mrs. Tinker at
this moment made her appearance with a pipe and a paper of tobacco,
for which she had been despatched a minute before Miss Sharp's
arrival; and she handed the articles over to Sir Pitt, who had taken
his seat by the fire.
"Where's the farden?" said
he. "I gave you three halfpence. Where's the change, old
Tinker?"
"There!" replied Mrs. Tinker,
flinging down the coin; it's only baronets as cares about farthings."
"A farthing a day is seven
shillings a year," answered the M.P.; "seven shillings a
year is the interest of seven guineas. Take care of your farthings,
old Tinker, and your guineas will come quite nat'ral."
"You may be sure it's Sir Pitt
Crawley, young woman," said Mrs. Tinker, surlily; "because
he looks to his farthings. You'll know him better afore long."
"And like me none the worse, Miss
Sharp," said the old gentleman, with an air almost of
politeness. "I must be just before I'm generous."
"He never gave away a farthing in
his life," growled Tinker.
"Never, and never will: it's
against my principle. Go and get another chair from the kitchen,
Tinker, if you want to sit down; and then we'll have a bit of
supper."
Presently the baronet plunged a fork
into the saucepan on the fire, and withdrew from the pot a piece of
tripe and an onion, which he divided into pretty equal portions, and
of which he partook with Mrs. Tinker. "You see, Miss Sharp, when
I'm not here Tinker's on board wages: when I'm in town she dines with
the family. Haw! haw! I'm glad Miss Sharp's not hungry, ain't you,
Tink?" And they fell to upon their frugal supper.
After supper Sir Pitt Crawley began to
smoke his pipe; and when it became quite dark, he lighted the
rushlight in the tin candlestick, and producing from an interminable
pocket a huge mass of papers, began reading them, and putting them in
order.
"I'm here on law business, my
dear, and that's how it happens that I shall have the pleasure of
such a pretty travelling companion to- morrow."
"He's always at law business,"
said Mrs. Tinker, taking up the pot of porter.
"Drink and drink about," said
the Baronet. "Yes; my dear, Tinker is quite right: I've lost and
won more lawsuits than any man in England. Look here at Crawley,
Bart. v. Snaffle. I'll throw him over, or my name's not Pitt Crawley.
Podder and another versus Crawley, Bart. Overseers of Snaily parish
against Crawley, Bart. They can't prove it's common: I'll defy 'em;
the land's mine. It no more belongs to the parish than it does to you
or Tinker here. I'll beat 'em, if it cost me a thousand guineas. Look
over the papers; you may if you like, my dear. Do you write a good
hand? I'll make you useful when we're at Queen's Crawley, depend on
it, Miss Sharp. Now the dowager's dead I want some one."
"She was as bad as he," said
Tinker. "She took the law of every one of her tradesmen; and
turned away forty-eight footmen in four year."
"She was close—very close,"
said the Baronet, simply; "but she was a valyble woman to me,
and saved me a steward."—And in this confidential strain, and
much to the amusement of the new-comer, the conversation continued
for a considerable time. Whatever Sir Pitt Crawley's qualities might
be, good or bad, he did not make the least disguise of them. He
talked of himself incessantly, sometimes in the coarsest and
vulgarest Hampshire accent; sometimes adopting the tone of a man of
the world. And so, with injunctions to Miss Sharp to be ready at five
in the morning, he bade her good night. "You'll sleep with
Tinker to-night," he said; "it's a big bed, and there's
room for two. Lady Crawley died in it. Good night."
Sir Pitt went off after this
benediction, and the solemn Tinker, rushlight in hand, led the way up
the great bleak stone stairs, past the great dreary drawing-room
doors, with the handles muffled up in paper, into the great front
bedroom, where Lady Crawley had slept her last. The bed and chamber
were so funereal and gloomy, you might have fancied, not only that
Lady Crawley died in the room, but that her ghost inhabited it.
Rebecca sprang about the apartment, however, with the greatest
liveliness, and had peeped into the huge wardrobes, and the closets,
and the cupboards, and tried the drawers which were locked, and
examined the dreary pictures and toilette appointments, while the old
charwoman was saying her prayers. "I shouldn't like to sleep in
this yeer bed without a good conscience, Miss," said the old
woman. "There's room for us and a half-dozen of ghosts in it,"
says Rebecca. "Tell me all about Lady Crawley and Sir Pitt
Crawley, and everybody, my DEAR Mrs. Tinker."
But old Tinker was not to be pumped by
this little cross-questioner; and signifying to her that bed was a
place for sleeping, not conversation, set up in her corner of the bed
such a snore as only the nose of innocence can produce. Rebecca lay
awake for a long, long time, thinking of the morrow, and of the new
world into which she was going, and of her chances of success there.
The rushlight flickered in the basin. The mantelpiece cast up a great
black shadow, over half of a mouldy old sampler, which her defunct
ladyship had worked, no doubt, and over two little family pictures of
young lads, one in a college gown, and the other in a red jacket like
a soldier. When she went to sleep, Rebecca chose that one to dream
about.
At four o'clock, on such a roseate
summer's morning as even made Great Gaunt Street look cheerful, the
faithful Tinker, having wakened her bedfellow, and bid her prepare
for departure, unbarred and unbolted the great hall door (the
clanging and clapping whereof startled the sleeping echoes in the
street), and taking her way into Oxford Street, summoned a coach from
a stand there. It is needless to particularize the number of the
vehicle, or to state that the driver was stationed thus early in the
neighbourhood of Swallow Street, in hopes that some young buck,
reeling homeward from the tavern, might need the aid of his vehicle,
and pay him with the generosity of intoxication.
It is likewise needless to say that the
driver, if he had any such hopes as those above stated, was grossly
disappointed; and that the worthy Baronet whom he drove to the City
did not give him one single penny more than his fare. It was in vain
that Jehu appealed and stormed; that he flung down Miss Sharp's
bandboxes in the gutter at the 'Necks, and swore he would take the
law of his fare.
"You'd better not," said one
of the ostlers; "it's Sir Pitt Crawley."
"So it is, Joe," cried the
Baronet, approvingly; "and I'd like to see the man can do me."
"So should oi," said Joe,
grinning sulkily, and mounting the Baronet's baggage on the roof of
the coach.
"Keep the box for me, Leader,"
exclaims the Member of Parliament to the coachman; who replied, "Yes,
Sir Pitt," with a touch of his hat, and rage in his soul (for he
had promised the box to a young gentleman from Cambridge, who would
have given a crown to a certainty), and Miss Sharp was accommodated
with a back seat inside the carriage, which might be said to be
carrying her into the wide world.
How the young man from Cambridge
sulkily put his five great-coats in front; but was reconciled when
little Miss Sharp was made to quit the carriage, and mount up beside
him—when he covered her up in one of his Benjamins, and became
perfectly good-humoured—how the asthmatic gentleman, the prim lady,
who declared upon her sacred honour she had never travelled in a
public carriage before (there is always such a lady in a coach—Alas!
was; for the coaches, where are they?), and the fat widow with the
brandy-bottle, took their places inside—how the porter asked them
all for money, and got sixpence from the gentleman and five greasy
halfpence from the fat widow—and how the carriage at length drove
away—now threading the dark lanes of Aldersgate, anon clattering by
the Blue Cupola of St. Paul's, jingling rapidly by the strangers'
entry of Fleet-Market, which, with Exeter 'Change, has now departed
to the world of shadows—how they passed the White Bear in
Piccadilly, and saw the dew rising up from the market-gardens of
Knightsbridge—how Turnhamgreen, Brentwood, Bagshot, were
passed—need not be told here. But the writer of these pages, who
has pursued in former days, and in the same bright weather, the same
remarkable journey, cannot but think of it with a sweet and tender
regret. Where is the road now, and its merry incidents of life? Is
there no Chelsea or Greenwich for the old honest pimple-nosed
coachmen? I wonder where are they, those good fellows? Is old Weller
alive or dead? and the waiters, yea, and the inns at which they
waited, and the cold rounds of beef inside, and the stunted ostler,
with his blue nose and clinking pail, where is he, and where is his
generation? To those great geniuses now in petticoats, who shall
write novels for the beloved reader's children, these men and things
will be as much legend and history as Nineveh, or Coeur de Lion, or
Jack Sheppard. For them stage-coaches will have become romances—a
team of four bays as fabulous as Bucephalus or Black Bess. Ah, how
their coats shone, as the stable-men pulled their clothes off, and
away they went—ah, how their tails shook, as with smoking sides at
the stage's end they demurely walked away into the inn-yard. Alas! we
shall never hear the horn sing at midnight, or see the pike-gates fly
open any more. Whither, however, is the light four-inside Trafalgar
coach carrying us? Let us be set down at Queen's Crawley without
further divagation, and see how Miss Rebecca Sharp speeds there.
Chapter VIII
*
Private and Confidential
Miss Rebecca Sharp to Miss Amelia
Sedley, Russell Square, London. (Free.—Pitt Crawley.)
MY DEAREST, SWEETEST AMELIA,
With what mingled joy and sorrow do I
take up the pen to write to my dearest friend! Oh, what a change
between to-day and yesterday! Now I am friendless and alone;
yesterday I was at home, in the sweet company of a sister, whom I
shall ever, ever cherish!
I will not tell you in what tears and
sadness I passed the fatal night in which I separated from you. YOU
went on Tuesday to joy and happiness, with your mother and YOUR
DEVOTED YOUNG SOLDIER by your side; and I thought of you all night,
dancing at the Perkins's, the prettiest, I am sure, of all the young
ladies at the Ball. I was brought by the groom in the old carriage to
Sir Pitt Crawley's town house, where, after John the groom had
behaved most rudely and insolently to me (alas! 'twas safe to insult
poverty and misfortune!), I was given over to Sir P.'s care, and made
to pass the night in an old gloomy bed, and by the side of a horrid
gloomy old charwoman, who keeps the house. I did not sleep one single
wink the whole night.
Sir Pitt is not what we silly girls,
when we used to read Cecilia at Chiswick, imagined a baronet must
have been. Anything, indeed, less like Lord Orville cannot be
imagined. Fancy an old, stumpy, short, vulgar, and very dirty man, in
old clothes and shabby old gaiters, who smokes a horrid pipe, and
cooks his own horrid supper in a saucepan. He speaks with a country
accent, and swore a great deal at the old charwoman, at the hackney
coachman who drove us to the inn where the coach went from, and on
which I made the journey OUTSIDE FOR THE GREATER PART OF THE WAY.
I was awakened at daybreak by the
charwoman, and having arrived at the inn, was at first placed inside
the coach. But, when we got to a place called Leakington, where the
rain began to fall very heavily—will you believe it?—I was forced
to come outside; for Sir Pitt is a proprietor of the coach, and as a
passenger came at Mudbury, who wanted an inside place, I was obliged
to go outside in the rain, where, however, a young gentleman from
Cambridge College sheltered me very kindly in one of his several
great coats.
This gentleman and the guard seemed to
know Sir Pitt very well, and laughed at him a great deal. They both
agreed in calling him an old screw; which means a very stingy,
avaricious person. He never gives any money to anybody, they said
(and this meanness I hate); and the young gentleman made me remark
that we drove very slow for the last two stages on the road, because
Sir Pitt was on the box, and because he is proprietor of the horses
for this part of the journey. "But won't I flog 'em on to
Squashmore, when I take the ribbons?" said the young Cantab.
"And sarve 'em right, Master Jack," said the guard. When I
comprehended the meaning of this phrase, and that Master Jack
intended to drive the rest of the way, and revenge himself on Sir
Pitt's horses, of course I laughed too.
A carriage and four splendid horses,
covered with armorial bearings, however, awaited us at Mudbury, four
miles from Queen's Crawley, and we made our entrance to the baronet's
park in state. There is a fine avenue of a mile long leading to the
house, and the woman at the lodge-gate (over the pillars of which are
a serpent and a dove, the supporters of the Crawley arms), made us a
number of curtsies as she flung open the old iron carved doors, which
are something like those at odious Chiswick.
"There's an avenue," said Sir
Pitt, "a mile long. There's six thousand pound of timber in them
there trees. Do you call that nothing?" He pronounced
avenue—EVENUE, and nothing—NOTHINK, so droll; and he had a Mr.
Hodson, his hind from Mudbury, into the carriage with him, and they
talked about distraining, and selling up, and draining and
subsoiling, and a great deal about tenants and farming—much more
than I could understand. Sam Miles had been caught poaching, and
Peter Bailey had gone to the workhouse at last. "Serve him
right," said Sir Pitt; "him and his family has been
cheating me on that farm these hundred and fifty years." Some
old tenant, I suppose, who could not pay his rent. Sir Pitt might
have said "he and his family," to be sure; but rich
baronets do not need to be careful about grammar, as poor governesses
must be.
As we passed, I remarked a beautiful
church-spire rising above some old elms in the park; and before them,
in the midst of a lawn, and some outhouses, an old red house with
tall chimneys covered with ivy, and the windows shining in the sun.
"Is that your church, sir?" I said.
"Yes, hang it," (said Sir
Pitt, only he used, dear, A MUCH WICKEDER WORD); "how's Buty,
Hodson? Buty's my brother Bute, my dear—my brother the parson. Buty
and the Beast I call him, ha, ha!"
Hodson laughed too, and then looking
more grave and nodding his head, said, "I'm afraid he's better,
Sir Pitt. He was out on his pony yesterday, looking at our corn."
"Looking after his tithes, hang'un
(only he used the same wicked word). Will brandy and water never kill
him? He's as tough as old whatdyecallum—old Methusalem."
Mr. Hodson laughed again. "The
young men is home from college. They've whopped John Scroggins till
he's well nigh dead."
"Whop my second keeper!"
roared out Sir Pitt.
"He was on the parson's ground,
sir," replied Mr. Hodson; and Sir Pitt in a fury swore that if
he ever caught 'em poaching on his ground, he'd transport 'em, by the
lord he would. However, he said, "I've sold the presentation of
the living, Hodson; none of that breed shall get it, I war'nt";
and Mr. Hodson said he was quite right: and I have no doubt from this
that the two brothers are at variance—as brothers often are, and
sisters too. Don't you remember the two Miss Scratchleys at Chiswick,
how they used always to fight and quarrel—and Mary Box, how she was
always thumping Louisa?
Presently, seeing two little boys
gathering sticks in the wood, Mr. Hodson jumped out of the carriage,
at Sir Pitt's order, and rushed upon them with his whip. "Pitch
into 'em, Hodson," roared the baronet; "flog their little
souls out, and bring 'em up to the house, the vagabonds; I'll commit
'em as sure as my name's Pitt." And presently we heard Mr.
Hodson's whip cracking on the shoulders of the poor little blubbering
wretches, and Sir Pitt, seeing that the malefactors were in custody,
drove on to the hall.
All the servants were ready to meet us,
and . . .
Here, my dear, I was interrupted last
night by a dreadful thumping at my door: and who do you think it was?
Sir Pitt Crawley in his night-cap and dressing-gown, such a figure!
As I shrank away from such a visitor, he came forward and seized my
candle. "No candles after eleven o'clock, Miss Becky," said
he. "Go to bed in the dark, you pretty little hussy" (that
is what he called me), "and unless you wish me to come for the
candle every night, mind and be in bed at eleven." And with
this, he and Mr. Horrocks the butler went off laughing. You may be
sure I shall not encourage any more of their visits. They let loose
two immense bloodhounds at night, which all last night were yelling
and howling at the moon. "I call the dog Gorer," said Sir
Pitt; "he's killed a man that dog has, and is master of a bull,
and the mother I used to call Flora; but now I calls her Aroarer, for
she's too old to bite. Haw, haw!"
Before the house of Queen's Crawley,
which is an odious old- fashioned red brick mansion, with tall
chimneys and gables of the style of Queen Bess, there is a terrace
flanked by the family dove and serpent, and on which the great
hall-door opens. And oh, my dear, the great hall I am sure is as big
and as glum as the great hall in the dear castle of Udolpho. It has a
large fireplace, in which we might put half Miss Pinkerton's school,
and the grate is big enough to roast an ox at the very least. Round
the room hang I don't know how many generations of Crawleys, some
with beards and ruffs, some with huge wigs and toes turned out, some
dressed in long straight stays and gowns that look as stiff as
towers, and some with long ringlets, and oh, my dear! scarcely any
stays at all. At one end of the hall is the great staircase all in
black oak, as dismal as may be, and on either side are tall doors
with stags' heads over them, leading to the billiard-room and the
library, and the great yellow saloon and the morning-rooms. I think
there are at least twenty bedrooms on the first floor; one of them
has the bed in which Queen Elizabeth slept; and I have been taken by
my new pupils through all these fine apartments this morning. They
are not rendered less gloomy, I promise you, by having the shutters
always shut; and there is scarce one of the apartments, but when the
light was let into it, I expected to see a ghost in the room. We have
a schoolroom on the second floor, with my bedroom leading into it on
one side, and that of the young ladies on the other. Then there are
Mr. Pitt's apartments—Mr. Crawley, he is called—the eldest son,
and Mr. Rawdon Crawley's rooms—he is an officer like SOMEBODY, and
away with his regiment. There is no want of room I assure you. You
might lodge all the people in Russell Square in the house, I think,
and have space to spare.
Half an hour after our arrival, the
great dinner-bell was rung, and I came down with my two pupils (they
are very thin insignificant little chits of ten and eight years old).
I came down in your dear muslin gown (about which that odious Mrs.
Pinner was so rude, because you gave it me); for I am to be treated
as one of the family, except on company days, when the young ladies
and I are to dine upstairs.
Well, the great dinner-bell rang, and
we all assembled in the little drawing-room where my Lady Crawley
sits. She is the second Lady Crawley, and mother of the young ladies.
She was an ironmonger's daughter, and her marriage was thought a
great match. She looks as if she had been handsome once, and her eyes
are always weeping for the loss of her beauty. She is pale and meagre
and high-shouldered, and has not a word to say for herself,
evidently. Her stepson Mr. Crawley, was likewise in the room. He was
in full dress, as pompous as an undertaker. He is pale, thin, ugly,
silent; he has thin legs, no chest, hay-coloured whiskers, and
straw-coloured hair. He is the very picture of his sainted mother
over the mantelpiece—Griselda of the noble house of Binkie.
"This is the new governess, Mr.
Crawley," said Lady Crawley, coming forward and taking my hand.
"Miss Sharp."
"O!" said Mr. Crawley, and
pushed his head once forward and began again to read a great pamphlet
with which he was busy.
"I hope you will be kind to my
girls," said Lady Crawley, with her pink eyes always full of
tears.
"Law, Ma, of course she will,"
said the eldest: and I saw at a glance that I need not be afraid of
THAT woman. "My lady is served," says the butler in black,
in an immense white shirt-frill, that looked as if it had been one of
the Queen Elizabeth's ruffs depicted in the hall; and so, taking Mr.
Crawley's arm, she led the way to the dining-room, whither I followed
with my little pupils in each hand.
Sir Pitt was already in the room with a
silver jug. He had just been to the cellar, and was in full dress
too; that is, he had taken his gaiters off, and showed his little
dumpy legs in black worsted stockings. The sideboard was covered with
glistening old plate—old cups, both gold and silver; old salvers
and cruet-stands, like Rundell and Bridge's shop. Everything on the
table was in silver too, and two footmen, with red hair and
canary-coloured liveries, stood on either side of the sideboard.
Mr. Crawley said a long grace, and Sir
Pitt said amen, and the great silver dish-covers were removed.
"What have we for dinner, Betsy?'
said the Baronet.
"Mutton broth, I believe, Sir
Pitt," answered Lady Crawley.
"Mouton aux navets," added
the butler gravely (pronounce, if you please, moutongonavvy); "and
the soup is potage de mouton a l'Ecossaise. The side-dishes contain
pommes de terre au naturel, and choufleur a l'eau."
"Mutton's mutton," said the
Baronet, "and a devilish good thing. What SHIP was it, Horrocks,
and when did you kill?" "One of the black-faced Scotch, Sir
Pitt: we killed on Thursday.
"Who took any?"
"Steel, of Mudbury, took the
saddle and two legs, Sir Pitt; but he says the last was too young and
confounded woolly, Sir Pitt."
"Will you take some potage, Miss
ah—Miss Blunt? said Mr. Crawley.
"Capital Scotch broth, my dear,"
said Sir Pitt, "though they call it by a French name."
"I believe it is the custom, sir,
in decent society," said Mr. Crawley, haughtily, "to call
the dish as I have called it"; and it was served to us on silver
soup plates by the footmen in the canary coats, with the mouton aux
navets. Then "ale and water" were brought, and served to us
young ladies in wine- glasses. I am not a judge of ale, but I can say
with a clear conscience I prefer water.
While we were enjoying our repast, Sir
Pitt took occasion to ask what had become of the shoulders of the
mutton.
"I believe they were eaten in the
servants' hall," said my lady, humbly.
"They was, my lady," said
Horrocks, "and precious little else we get there neither."
Sir Pitt burst into a horse-laugh, and
continued his conversation with Mr. Horrocks. "That there little
black pig of the Kent sow's breed must be uncommon fat now."
"It's not quite busting, Sir
Pitt," said the butler with the gravest air, at which Sir Pitt,
and with him the young ladies, this time, began to laugh violently.
"Miss Crawley, Miss Rose Crawley,"
said Mr. Crawley, "your laughter strikes me as being exceedingly
out of place."
"Never mind, my lord," said
the Baronet, "we'll try the porker on Saturday. Kill un on
Saturday morning, John Horrocks. Miss Sharp adores pork, don't you,
Miss Sharp?"
And I think this is all the
conversation that I remember at dinner. When the repast was concluded
a jug of hot water was placed before Sir Pitt, with a case-bottle
containing, I believe, rum. Mr. Horrocks served myself and my pupils
with three little glasses of wine, and a bumper was poured out for my
lady. When we retired, she took from her work-drawer an enormous
interminable piece of knitting; the young ladies began to play at
cribbage with a dirty pack of cards. We had but one candle lighted,
but it was in a magnificent old silver candlestick, and after a very
few questions from my lady, I had my choice of amusement between a
volume of sermons, and a pamphlet on the corn-laws, which Mr. Crawley
had been reading before dinner.
So we sat for an hour until steps were
heard.
"Put away the cards, girls,"
cried my lady, in a great tremor; "put down Mr. Crawley's books,
Miss Sharp"; and these orders had been scarcely obeyed, when Mr.
Crawley entered the room.
"We will resume yesterday's
discourse, young ladies," said he, "and you shall each read
a page by turns; so that Miss a—Miss Short may have an opportunity
of hearing you"; and the poor girls began to spell a long dismal
sermon delivered at Bethesda Chapel, Liverpool, on behalf of the
mission for the Chickasaw Indians. Was it not a charming evening?
At ten the servants were told to call
Sir Pitt and the household to prayers. Sir Pitt came in first, very
much flushed, and rather unsteady in his gait; and after him the
butler, the canaries, Mr. Crawley's man, three other men, smelling
very much of the stable, and four women, one of whom, I remarked, was
very much overdressed, and who flung me a look of great scorn as she
plumped down on her knees.
After Mr. Crawley had done haranguing
and expounding, we received our candles, and then we went to bed; and
then I was disturbed in my writing, as I have described to my dearest
sweetest Amelia.
Good night. A thousand, thousand,
thousand kisses!
Saturday.—This morning, at five, I
heard the shrieking of the little black pig. Rose and Violet
introduced me to it yesterday; and to the stables, and to the kennel,
and to the gardener, who was picking fruit to send to market, and
from whom they begged hard a bunch of hot-house grapes; but he said
that Sir Pitt had numbered every "Man Jack" of them, and it
would be as much as his place was worth to give any away. The darling
girls caught a colt in a paddock, and asked me if I would ride, and
began to ride themselves, when the groom, coming with horrid oaths,
drove them away.
Lady Crawley is always knitting the
worsted. Sir Pitt is always tipsy, every night; and, I believe, sits
with Horrocks, the butler. Mr. Crawley always reads sermons in the
evening, and in the morning is locked up in his study, or else rides
to Mudbury, on county business, or to Squashmore, where he preaches,
on Wednesdays and Fridays, to the tenants there.
A hundred thousand grateful loves to
your dear papa and mamma. Is your poor brother recovered of his
rack-punch? Oh, dear! Oh, dear! How men should beware of wicked
punch!
Ever and ever thine own REBECCA
Everything considered, I think it is
quite as well for our dear Amelia Sedley, in Russell Square, that
Miss Sharp and she are parted. Rebecca is a droll funny creature, to
be sure; and those descriptions of the poor lady weeping for the loss
of her beauty, and the gentleman "with hay-coloured whiskers and
straw-coloured hair," are very smart, doubtless, and show a
great knowledge of the world. That she might, when on her knees, have
been thinking of something better than Miss Horrocks's ribbons, has
possibly struck both of us. But my kind reader will please to
remember that this history has "Vanity Fair" for a title,
and that Vanity Fair is a very vain, wicked, foolish place, full of
all sorts of humbugs and falsenesses and pretensions. And while the
moralist, who is holding forth on the cover ( an accurate portrait of
your humble servant), professes to wear neither gown nor bands, but
only the very same long-eared livery in which his congregation is
arrayed: yet, look you, one is bound to speak the truth as far as one
knows it, whether one mounts a cap and bells or a shovel hat; and a
deal of disagreeable matter must come out in the course of such an
undertaking.
I have heard a brother of the
story-telling trade, at Naples, preaching to a pack of
good-for-nothing honest lazy fellows by the sea-shore, work himself
up into such a rage and passion with some of the villains whose
wicked deeds he was describing and inventing, that the audience could
not resist it; and they and the poet together would burst out into a
roar of oaths and execrations against the fictitious monster of the
tale, so that the hat went round, and the bajocchi tumbled into it,
in the midst of a perfect storm of sympathy.
At the little Paris theatres, on the
other hand, you will not only hear the people yelling out "Ah
gredin! Ah monstre:" and cursing the tyrant of the play from the
boxes; but the actors themselves positively refuse to play the wicked
parts, such as those of infames Anglais, brutal Cossacks, and what
not, and prefer to appear at a smaller salary, in their real
characters as loyal Frenchmen. I set the two stories one against the
other, so that you may see that it is not from mere mercenary motives
that the present performer is desirous to show up and trounce his
villains; but because he has a sincere hatred of them, which he
cannot keep down, and which must find a vent in suitable abuse and
bad language.
I warn my "kyind friends,"
then, that I am going to tell a story of harrowing villainy and
complicated—but, as I trust, intensely interesting—crime. My
rascals are no milk-and-water rascals, I promise you. When we come to
the proper places we won't spare fine language—No, no! But when we
are going over the quiet country we must perforce be calm. A tempest
in a slop-basin is absurd. We will reserve that sort of thing for the
mighty ocean and the lonely midnight. The present Chapter is very
mild. Others—But we will not anticipate THOSE.
And, as we bring our characters
forward, I will ask leave, as a man and a brother, not only to
introduce them, but occasionally to step down from the platform, and
talk about them: if they are good and kindly, to love them and shake
them by the hand: if they are silly, to laugh at them confidentially
in the reader's sleeve: if they are wicked and heartless, to abuse
them in the strongest terms which politeness admits of.
Otherwise you might fancy it was I who
was sneering at the practice of devotion, which Miss Sharp finds so
ridiculous; that it was I who laughed good-humouredly at the reeling
old Silenus of a baronet— whereas the laughter comes from one who
has no reverence except for prosperity, and no eye for anything
beyond success. Such people there are living and flourishing in the
world—Faithless, Hopeless, Charityless: let us have at them, dear
friends, with might and main. Some there are, and very successful
too, mere quacks and fools: and it was to combat and expose such as
those, no doubt, that Laughter was made.
Chapter IX
*
Family Portraits
Sir Pitt Crawley was a philosopher with
a taste for what is called low life. His first marriage with the
daughter of the noble Binkie had been made under the auspices of his
parents; and as he often told Lady Crawley in her lifetime she was
such a confounded quarrelsome high-bred jade that when she died he
was hanged if he would ever take another of her sort, at her
ladyship's demise he kept his promise, and selected for a second wife
Miss Rose Dawson, daughter of Mr. John Thomas Dawson, ironmonger, of
Mudbury. What a happy woman was Rose to be my Lady Crawley!
Let us set down the items of her
happiness. In the first place, she gave up Peter Butt, a young man
who kept company with her, and in consequence of his disappointment
in love, took to smuggling, poaching, and a thousand other bad
courses. Then she quarrelled, as in duty bound, with all the friends
and intimates of her youth, who, of course, could not be received by
my Lady at Queen's Crawley—nor did she find in her new rank and
abode any persons who were willing to welcome her. Who ever did? Sir
Huddleston Fuddleston had three daughters who all hoped to be Lady
Crawley. Sir Giles Wapshot's family were insulted that one of the
Wapshot girls had not the preference in the marriage, and the
remaining baronets of the county were indignant at their comrade's
misalliance. Never mind the commoners, whom we will leave to grumble
anonymously.
Sir Pitt did not care, as he said, a
brass farden for any one of them. He had his pretty Rose, and what
more need a man require than to please himself? So he used to get
drunk every night: to beat his pretty Rose sometimes: to leave her in
Hampshire when he went to London for the parliamentary session,
without a single friend in the wide world. Even Mrs. Bute Crawley,
the Rector's wife, refused to visit her, as she said she would never
give the pas to a tradesman's daughter.
As the only endowments with which
Nature had gifted Lady Crawley were those of pink cheeks and a white
skin, and as she had no sort of character, nor talents, nor opinions,
nor occupations, nor amusements, nor that vigour of soul and ferocity
of temper which often falls to the lot of entirely foolish women, her
hold upon Sir Pitt's affections was not very great. Her roses faded
out of her cheeks, and the pretty freshness left her figure after the
birth of a couple of children, and she became a mere machine in her
husband's house of no more use than the late Lady Crawley's grand
piano. Being a light-complexioned woman, she wore light clothes, as
most blondes will, and appeared, in preference, in draggled
sea-green, or slatternly sky-blue. She worked that worsted day and
night, or other pieces like it. She had counterpanes in the course of
a few years to all the beds in Crawley. She had a small
flower-garden, for which she had rather an affection; but beyond this
no other like or disliking. When her husband was rude to her she was
apathetic: whenever he struck her she cried. She had not character
enough to take to drinking, and moaned about, slipshod and in
curl-papers all day. O Vanity Fair—Vanity Fair! This might have
been, but for you, a cheery lass—Peter Butt and Rose a happy man
and wife, in a snug farm, with a hearty family; and an honest portion
of pleasures, cares, hopes and struggles—but a title and a coach
and four are toys more precious than happiness in Vanity Fair: and if
Harry the Eighth or Bluebeard were alive now, and wanted a tenth
wife, do you suppose he could not get the prettiest girl that shall
be presented this season?
The languid dulness of their mamma did
not, as it may be supposed, awaken much affection in her little
daughters, but they were very happy in the servants' hall and in the
stables; and the Scotch gardener having luckily a good wife and some
good children, they got a little wholesome society and instruction in
his lodge, which was the only education bestowed upon them until Miss
Sharp came.
Her engagement was owing to the
remonstrances of Mr. Pitt Crawley, the only friend or protector Lady
Crawley ever had, and the only person, besides her children, for whom
she entertained a little feeble attachment. Mr. Pitt took after the
noble Binkies, from whom he was descended, and was a very polite and
proper gentleman. When he grew to man's estate, and came back from
Christchurch, he began to reform the slackened discipline of the
hall, in spite of his father, who stood in awe of him. He was a man
of such rigid refinement, that he would have starved rather than have
dined without a white neckcloth. Once, when just from college, and
when Horrocks the butler brought him a letter without placing it
previously on a tray, he gave that domestic a look, and administered
to him a speech so cutting, that Horrocks ever after trembled before
him; the whole household bowed to him: Lady Crawley's curl-papers
came off earlier when he was at home: Sir Pitt's muddy gaiters
disappeared; and if that incorrigible old man still adhered to other
old habits, he never fuddled himself with rum-and-water in his son's
presence, and only talked to his servants in a very reserved and
polite manner; and those persons remarked that Sir Pitt never swore
at Lady Crawley while his son was in the room.
It was he who taught the butler to say,
"My lady is served," and who insisted on handing her
ladyship in to dinner. He seldom spoke to her, but when he did it was
with the most powerful respect; and he never let her quit the
apartment without rising in the most stately manner to open the door,
and making an elegant bow at her egress.
At Eton he was called Miss Crawley; and
there, I am sorry to say, his younger brother Rawdon used to lick him
violently. But though his parts were not brilliant, he made up for
his lack of talent by meritorious industry, and was never known,
during eight years at school, to be subject to that punishment which
it is generally thought none but a cherub can escape.
At college his career was of course
highly creditable. And here he prepared himself for public life, into
which he was to be introduced by the patronage of his grandfather,
Lord Binkie, by studying the ancient and modern orators with great
assiduity, and by speaking unceasingly at the debating societies. But
though he had a fine flux of words, and delivered his little voice
with great pomposity and pleasure to himself, and never advanced any
sentiment or opinion which was not perfectly trite and stale, and
supported by a Latin quotation; yet he failed somehow, in spite of a
mediocrity which ought to have insured any man a success. He did not
even get the prize poem, which all his friends said he was sure of.
After leaving college he became Private
Secretary to Lord Binkie, and was then appointed Attache to the
Legation at Pumpernickel, which post he filled with perfect honour,
and brought home despatches, consisting of Strasburg pie, to the
Foreign Minister of the day. After remaining ten years Attache
(several years after the lamented Lord Binkie's demise), and finding
the advancement slow, he at length gave up the diplomatic service in
some disgust, and began to turn country gentleman.
He wrote a pamphlet on Malt on
returning to England (for he was an ambitious man, and always liked
to be before the public), and took a strong part in the Negro
Emancipation question. Then he became a friend of Mr. Wilberforce's,
whose politics he admired, and had that famous correspondence with
the Reverend Silas Hornblower, on the Ashantee Mission. He was in
London, if not for the Parliament session, at least in May, for the
religious meetings. In the country he was a magistrate, and an active
visitor and speaker among those destitute of religious instruction.
He was said to be paying his addresses to Lady Jane Sheepshanks, Lord
Southdown's third daughter, and whose sister, Lady Emily, wrote those
sweet tracts, "The Sailor's True Binnacle," and "The
Applewoman of Finchley Common."
Miss Sharp's accounts of his employment
at Queen's Crawley were not caricatures. He subjected the servants
there to the devotional exercises before mentioned, in which (and so
much the better) he brought his father to join. He patronised an
Independent meeting- house in Crawley parish, much to the indignation
of his uncle the Rector, and to the consequent delight of Sir Pitt,
who was induced to go himself once or twice, which occasioned some
violent sermons at Crawley parish church, directed point-blank at the
Baronet's old Gothic pew there. Honest Sir Pitt, however, did not
feel the force of these discourses, as he always took his nap during
sermon-time.
Mr. Crawley was very earnest, for the
good of the nation and of the Christian world, that the old gentleman
should yield him up his place in Parliament; but this the elder
constantly refused to do. Both were of course too prudent to give up
the fifteen hundred a year which was brought in by the second seat
(at this period filled by Mr. Quadroon, with carte blanche on the
Slave question); indeed the family estate was much embarrassed, and
the income drawn from the borough was of great use to the house of
Queen's Crawley.
It had never recovered the heavy fine
imposed upon Walpole Crawley, first baronet, for peculation in the
Tape and Sealing Wax Office. Sir Walpole was a jolly fellow, eager to
seize and to spend money (alieni appetens, sui profusus, as Mr.
Crawley would remark with a sigh), and in his day beloved by all the
county for the constant drunkenness and hospitality which was
maintained at Queen's Crawley. The cellars were filled with burgundy
then, the kennels with hounds, and the stables with gallant hunters;
now, such horses as Queen's Crawley possessed went to plough, or ran
in the Trafalgar Coach; and it was with a team of these very horses,
on an off-day, that Miss Sharp was brought to the Hall; for boor as
he was, Sir Pitt was a stickler for his dignity while at home, and
seldom drove out but with four horses, and though he dined off boiled
mutton, had always three footmen to serve it.
If mere parsimony could have made a man
rich, Sir Pitt Crawley might have become very wealthy—if he had
been an attorney in a country town, with no capital but his brains,
it is very possible that he would have turned them to good account,
and might have achieved for himself a very considerable influence and
competency. But he was unluckily endowed with a good name and a large
though encumbered estate, both of which went rather to injure than to
advance him. He had a taste for law, which cost him many thousands
yearly; and being a great deal too clever to be robbed, as he said,
by any single agent, allowed his affairs to be mismanaged by a dozen,
whom he all equally mistrusted. He was such a sharp landlord, that he
could hardly find any but bankrupt tenants; and such a close farmer,
as to grudge almost the seed to the ground, whereupon revengeful
Nature grudged him the crops which she granted to more liberal
husbandmen. He speculated in every possible way; he worked mines;
bought canal- shares; horsed coaches; took government contracts, and
was the busiest man and magistrate of his county. As he would not pay
honest agents at his granite quarry, he had the satisfaction of
finding that four overseers ran away, and took fortunes with them to
America. For want of proper precautions, his coal-mines filled with
water: the government flung his contract of damaged beef upon his
hands: and for his coach-horses, every mail proprietor in the kingdom
knew that he lost more horses than any man in the country, from
underfeeding and buying cheap. In disposition he was sociable, and
far from being proud; nay, he rather preferred the society of a
farmer or a horse-dealer to that of a gentleman, like my lord, his
son: he was fond of drink, of swearing, of joking with the farmers'
daughters: he was never known to give away a shilling or to do a good
action, but was of a pleasant, sly, laughing mood, and would cut his
joke and drink his glass with a tenant and sell him up the next day;
or have his laugh with the poacher he was transporting with equal
good humour. His politeness for the fair sex has already been hinted
at by Miss Rebecca Sharp—in a word, the whole baronetage, peerage,
commonage of England, did not contain a more cunning, mean, selfish,
foolish, disreputable old man. That blood- red hand of Sir Pitt
Crawley's would be in anybody's pocket except his own; and it is with
grief and pain, that, as admirers of the British aristocracy, we find
ourselves obliged to admit the existence of so many ill qualities in
a person whose name is in Debrett.
One great cause why Mr. Crawley had
such a hold over the affections of his father, resulted from money
arrangements. The Baronet owed his son a sum of money out of the
jointure of his mother, which he did not find it convenient to pay;
indeed he had an almost invincible repugnance to paying anybody, and
could only be brought by force to discharge his debts. Miss Sharp
calculated (for she became, as we shall hear speedily, inducted into
most of the secrets of the family) that the mere payment of his
creditors cost the honourable Baronet several hundreds yearly; but
this was a delight he could not forego; he had a savage pleasure in
making the poor wretches wait, and in shifting from court to court
and from term to term the period of satisfaction. What's the good of
being in Parliament, he said, if you must pay your debts? Hence,
indeed, his position as a senator was not a little useful to him.
Vanity Fair—Vanity Fair! Here was a
man, who could not spell, and did not care to read—who had the
habits and the cunning of a boor: whose aim in life was pettifogging:
who never had a taste, or emotion, or enjoyment, but what was sordid
and foul; and yet he had rank, and honours, and power, somehow: and
was a dignitary of the land, and a pillar of the state. He was high
sheriff, and rode in a golden coach. Great ministers and statesmen
courted him; and in Vanity Fair he had a higher place than the most
brilliant genius or spotless virtue.
Sir Pitt had an unmarried half-sister
who inherited her mother's large fortune, and though the Baronet
proposed to borrow this money of her on mortgage, Miss Crawley
declined the offer, and preferred the security of the funds. She had
signified, however, her intention of leaving her inheritance between
Sir Pitt's second son and the family at the Rectory, and had once or
twice paid the debts of Rawdon Crawley in his career at college and
in the army. Miss Crawley was, in consequence, an object of great
respect when she came to Queen's Crawley, for she had a balance at
her banker's which would have made her beloved anywhere.
What a dignity it gives an old lady,
that balance at the banker's! How tenderly we look at her faults if
she is a relative (and may every reader have a score of such), what a
kind good-natured old creature we find her! How the junior partner of
Hobbs and Dobbs leads her smiling to the carriage with the lozenge
upon it, and the fat wheezy coachman! How, when she comes to pay us a
visit, we generally find an opportunity to let our friends know her
station in the world! We say (and with perfect truth) I wish I had
Miss MacWhirter's signature to a cheque for five thousand pounds. She
wouldn't miss it, says your wife. She is my aunt, say you, in an easy
careless way, when your friend asks if Miss MacWhirter is any
relative. Your wife is perpetually sending her little testimonies of
affection, your little girls work endless worsted baskets, cushions,
and footstools for her. What a good fire there is in her room when
she comes to pay you a visit, although your wife laces her stays
without one! The house during her stay assumes a festive, neat, warm,
jovial, snug appearance not visible at other seasons. You yourself,
dear sir, forget to go to sleep after dinner, and find yourself all
of a sudden (though you invariably lose) very fond of a rubber. What
good dinners you have—game every day, Malmsey- Madeira, and no end
of fish from London. Even the servants in the kitchen share in the
general prosperity; and, somehow, during the stay of Miss
MacWhirter's fat coachman, the beer is grown much stronger, and the
consumption of tea and sugar in the nursery (where her maid takes her
meals) is not regarded in the least. Is it so, or is it not so? I
appeal to the middle classes. Ah, gracious powers! I wish you would
send me an old aunt—a maiden aunt—an aunt with a lozenge on her
carriage, and a front of light coffee-coloured hair—how my children
should work workbags for her, and my Julia and I would make her
comfortable! Sweet—sweet vision! Foolish—foolish dream!
Chapter X
*
Miss Sharp Begins to Make Friends
And now, being received as a member of
the amiable family whose portraits we have sketched in the foregoing
pages, it became naturally Rebecca's duty to make herself, as she
said, agreeable to her benefactors, and to gain their confidence to
the utmost of her power. Who can but admire this quality of gratitude
in an unprotected orphan; and, if there entered some degree of
selfishness into her calculations, who can say but that her prudence
was perfectly justifiable? "I am alone in the world," said
the friendless girl. "I have nothing to look for but what my own
labour can bring me; and while that little pink-faced chit Amelia,
with not half my sense, has ten thousand pounds and an establishment
secure, poor Rebecca (and my figure is far better than hers) has only
herself and her own wits to trust to. Well, let us see if my wits
cannot provide me with an honourable maintenance, and if some day or
the other I cannot show Miss Amelia my real superiority over her. Not
that I dislike poor Amelia: who can dislike such a harmless,
good-natured creature?—only it will be a fine day when I can take
my place above her in the world, as why, indeed, should I not?"
Thus it was that our little romantic friend formed visions of the
future for herself—nor must we be scandalised that, in all her
castles in the air, a husband was the principal inhabitant. Of what
else have young ladies to think, but husbands? Of what else do their
dear mammas think? "I must be my own mamma," said Rebecca;
not without a tingling consciousness of defeat, as she thought over
her little misadventure with Jos Sedley.
So she wisely determined to render her
position with the Queen's Crawley family comfortable and secure, and
to this end resolved to make friends of every one around her who
could at all interfere with her comfort.
As my Lady Crawley was not one of these
personages, and a woman, moreover, so indolent and void of character
as not to be of the least consequence in her own house, Rebecca soon
found that it was not at all necessary to cultivate her good
will—indeed, impossible to gain it. She used to talk to her pupils
about their "poor mamma"; and, though she treated that lady
with every demonstration of cool respect, it was to the rest of the
family that she wisely directed the chief part of her attentions.
With the young people, whose applause
she thoroughly gained, her method was pretty simple. She did not
pester their young brains with too much learning, but, on the
contrary, let them have their own way in regard to educating
themselves; for what instruction is more effectual than
self-instruction? The eldest was rather fond of books, and as there
was in the old library at Queen's Crawley a considerable provision of
works of light literature of the last century, both in the French and
English languages (they had been purchased by the Secretary of the
Tape and Sealing Wax Office at the period of his disgrace), and as
nobody ever troubled the book- shelves but herself, Rebecca was
enabled agreeably, and, as it were, in playing, to impart a great
deal of instruction to Miss Rose Crawley.
She and Miss Rose thus read together
many delightful French and English works, among which may be
mentioned those of the learned Dr. Smollett, of the ingenious Mr.
Henry Fielding, of the graceful and fantastic Monsieur Crebillon the
younger, whom our immortal poet Gray so much admired, and of the
universal Monsieur de Voltaire. Once, when Mr. Crawley asked what the
young people were reading, the governess replied "Smollett."
"Oh, Smollett," said Mr. Crawley, quite satisfied. "His
history is more dull, but by no means so dangerous as that of Mr.
Hume. It is history you are reading?" "Yes," said Miss
Rose; without, however, adding that it was the history of Mr.
Humphrey Clinker. On another occasion he was rather scandalised at
finding his sister with a book of French plays; but as the governess
remarked that it was for the purpose of acquiring the French idiom in
conversation, he was fain to be content. Mr. Crawley, as a
diplomatist, was exceedingly proud of his own skill in speaking the
French language (for he was of the world still), and not a little
pleased with the compliments which the governess continually paid him
upon his proficiency.
Miss Violet's tastes were, on the
contrary, more rude and boisterous than those of her sister. She knew
the sequestered spots where the hens laid their eggs. She could climb
a tree to rob the nests of the feathered songsters of their speckled
spoils. And her pleasure was to ride the young colts, and to scour
the plains like Camilla. She was the favourite of her father and of
the stablemen. She was the darling, and withal the terror of the
cook; for she discovered the haunts of the jam-pots, and would attack
them when they were within her reach. She and her sister were engaged
in constant battles. Any of which peccadilloes, if Miss Sharp
discovered, she did not tell them to Lady Crawley; who would have
told them to the father, or worse, to Mr. Crawley; but promised not
to tell if Miss Violet would be a good girl and love her governess.
With Mr. Crawley Miss Sharp was
respectful and obedient. She used to consult him on passages of
French which she could not understand, though her mother was a
Frenchwoman, and which he would construe to her satisfaction: and,
besides giving her his aid in profane literature, he was kind enough
to select for her books of a more serious tendency, and address to
her much of his conversation. She admired, beyond measure, his speech
at the Quashimaboo-Aid Society; took an interest in his pamphlet on
malt: was often affected, even to tears, by his discourses of an
evening, and would say—"Oh, thank you, sir," with a sigh,
and a look up to heaven, that made him occasionally condescend to
shake hands with her. "Blood is everything, after all,"
would that aristocratic religionist say. "How Miss Sharp is
awakened by my words, when not one of the people here is touched. I
am too fine for them—too delicate. I must familiarise my style—but
she understands it. Her mother was a Montmorency."
Indeed it was from this famous family,
as it appears, that Miss Sharp, by the mother's side, was descended.
Of course she did not say that her mother had been on the stage; it
would have shocked Mr. Crawley's religious scruples. How many noble
emigres had this horrid revolution plunged in poverty! She had
several stories about her ancestors ere she had been many months in
the house; some of which Mr. Crawley happened to find in D'Hozier's
dictionary, which was in the library, and which strengthened his
belief in their truth, and in the high-breeding of Rebecca. Are we to
suppose from this curiosity and prying into dictionaries, could our
heroine suppose that Mr. Crawley was interested in her?—no, only in
a friendly way. Have we not stated that he was attached to Lady Jane
Sheepshanks?
He took Rebecca to task once or twice
about the propriety of playing at backgammon with Sir Pitt, saying
that it was a godless amusement, and that she would be much better
engaged in reading "Thrump's Legacy," or "The Blind
Washerwoman of Moorfields," or any work of a more serious
nature; but Miss Sharp said her dear mother used often to play the
same game with the old Count de Trictrac and the venerable Abbe du
Cornet, and so found an excuse for this and other worldly amusements.
But it was not only by playing at
backgammon with the Baronet, that the little governess rendered
herself agreeable to her employer. She found many different ways of
being useful to him. She read over, with indefatigable patience, all
those law papers, with which, before she came to Queen's Crawley, he
had promised to entertain her. She volunteered to copy many of his
letters, and adroitly altered the spelling of them so as to suit the
usages of the present day. She became interested in everything
appertaining to the estate, to the farm, the park, the garden, and
the stables; and so delightful a companion was she, that the Baronet
would seldom take his after-breakfast walk without her (and the
children of course), when she would give her advice as to the trees
which were to be lopped in the shrubberies, the garden-beds to be
dug, the crops which were to be cut, the horses which were to go to
cart or plough. Before she had been a year at Queen's Crawley she had
quite won the Baronet's confidence; and the conversation at the
dinner-table, which before used to be held between him and Mr.
Horrocks the butler, was now almost exclusively between Sir Pitt and
Miss Sharp. She was almost mistress of the house when Mr. Crawley was
absent, but conducted herself in her new and exalted situation with
such circumspection and modesty as not to offend the authorities of
the kitchen and stable, among whom her behaviour was always
exceedingly modest and affable. She was quite a different person from
the haughty, shy, dissatisfied little girl whom we have known
previously, and this change of temper proved great prudence, a
sincere desire of amendment, or at any rate great moral courage on
her part. Whether it was the heart which dictated this new system of
complaisance and humility adopted by our Rebecca, is to be proved by
her after-history. A system of hypocrisy, which lasts through whole
years, is one seldom satisfactorily practised by a person of
one-and-twenty; however, our readers will recollect, that, though
young in years, our heroine was old in life and experience, and we
have written to no purpose if they have not discovered that she was a
very clever woman.
The elder and younger son of the house
of Crawley were, like the gentleman and lady in the weather-box,
never at home together—they hated each other cordially: indeed,
Rawdon Crawley, the dragoon, had a great contempt for the
establishment altogether, and seldom came thither except when his
aunt paid her annual visit.
The great good quality of this old lady
has been mentioned. She possessed seventy thousand pounds, and had
almost adopted Rawdon. She disliked her elder nephew exceedingly, and
despised him as a milksop. In return he did not hesitate to state
that her soul was irretrievably lost, and was of opinion that his
brother's chance in the next world was not a whit better. "She
is a godless woman of the world," would Mr. Crawley say; "she
lives with atheists and Frenchmen. My mind shudders when I think of
her awful, awful situation, and that, near as she is to the grave,
she should be so given up to vanity, licentiousness, profaneness, and
folly." In fact, the old lady declined altogether to hear his
hour's lecture of an evening; and when she came to Queen's Crawley
alone, he was obliged to pretermit his usual devotional exercises.
"Shut up your sarmons, Pitt, when
Miss Crawley comes down," said his father; "she has written
to say that she won't stand the preachifying."
"O, sir! consider the servants."
"The servants be hanged,"
said Sir Pitt; and his son thought even worse would happen were they
deprived of the benefit of his instruction.
"Why, hang it, Pitt!" said
the father to his remonstrance. "You wouldn't be such a flat as
to let three thousand a year go out of the family?"
"What is money compared to our
souls, sir?" continued Mr. Crawley.
"You mean that the old lady won't
leave the money to you?"—and who knows but it was Mr.
Crawley's meaning?
Old Miss Crawley was certainly one of
the reprobate. She had a snug little house in Park Lane, and, as she
ate and drank a great deal too much during the season in London, she
went to Harrowgate or Cheltenham for the summer. She was the most
hospitable and jovial of old vestals, and had been a beauty in her
day, she said. (All old women were beauties once, we very well know.)
She was a bel esprit, and a dreadful Radical for those days. She had
been in France (where St. Just, they say, inspired her with an
unfortunate passion), and loved, ever after, French novels, French
cookery, and French wines. She read Voltaire, and had Rousseau by
heart; talked very lightly about divorce, and most energetically of
the rights of women. She had pictures of Mr. Fox in every room in the
house: when that statesman was in opposition, I am not sure that she
had not flung a main with him; and when he came into office, she took
great credit for bringing over to him Sir Pitt and his colleague for
Queen's Crawley, although Sir Pitt would have come over himself,
without any trouble on the honest lady's part. It is needless to say
that Sir Pitt was brought to change his views after the death of the
great Whig statesman.
This worthy old lady took a fancy to
Rawdon Crawley when a boy, sent him to Cambridge (in opposition to
his brother at Oxford), and, when the young man was requested by the
authorities of the first-named University to quit after a residence
of two years, she bought him his commission in the Life Guards Green.
A perfect and celebrated "blood,"
or dandy about town, was this young officer. Boxing, rat-hunting, the
fives court, and four-in- hand driving were then the fashion of our
British aristocracy; and he was an adept in all these noble sciences.
And though he belonged to the household troops, who, as it was their
duty to rally round the Prince Regent, had not shown their valour in
foreign service yet, Rawdon Crawley had already (apropos of play, of
which he was immoderately fond) fought three bloody duels, in which
he gave ample proofs of his contempt for death.
"And for what follows after
death," would Mr. Crawley observe, throwing his
gooseberry-coloured eyes up to the ceiling. He was always thinking of
his brother's soul, or of the souls of those who differed with him in
opinion: it is a sort of comfort which many of the serious give
themselves.
Silly, romantic Miss Crawley, far from
being horrified at the courage of her favourite, always used to pay
his debts after his duels; and would not listen to a word that was
whispered against his morality. "He will sow his wild oats,"
she would say, "and is worth far more than that puling hypocrite
of a brother of his."
Chapter XI
*
Arcadian Simplicity
Besides these honest folks at the Hall
(whose simplicity and sweet rural purity surely show the advantage of
a country life over a town one), we must introduce the reader to
their relatives and neighbours at the Rectory, Bute Crawley and his
wife.
The Reverend Bute Crawley was a tall,
stately, jolly, shovel-hatted man, far more popular in his county
than the Baronet his brother. At college he pulled stroke-oar in the
Christchurch boat, and had thrashed all the best bruisers of the
"town." He carried his taste for boxing and athletic
exercises into private life; there was not a fight within twenty
miles at which he was not present, nor a race, nor a coursing match,
nor a regatta, nor a ball, nor an election, nor a visitation dinner,
nor indeed a good dinner in the whole county, but he found means to
attend it. You might see his bay mare and gig-lamps a score of miles
away from his Rectory House, whenever there was any dinner-party at
Fuddleston, or at Roxby, or at Wapshot Hall, or at the great lords of
the county, with all of whom he was intimate. He had a fine voice;
sang "A southerly wind and a cloudy sky"; and gave the
"whoop" in chorus with general applause. He rode to hounds
in a pepper-and-salt frock, and was one of the best fishermen in the
county.
Mrs. Crawley, the rector's wife, was a
smart little body, who wrote this worthy divine's sermons. Being of a
domestic turn, and keeping the house a great deal with her daughters,
she ruled absolutely within the Rectory, wisely giving her husband
full liberty without. He was welcome to come and go, and dine abroad
as many days as his fancy dictated, for Mrs. Crawley was a saving
woman and knew the price of port wine. Ever since Mrs. Bute carried
off the young Rector of Queen's Crawley (she was of a good family,
daughter of the late Lieut.-Colonel Hector McTavish, and she and her
mother played for Bute and won him at Harrowgate), she had been a
prudent and thrifty wife to him. In spite of her care, however, he
was always in debt. It took him at least ten years to pay off his
college bills contracted during his father's lifetime. In the year
179-, when he was just clear of these incumbrances, he gave the odds
of 100 to 1 (in twenties) against Kangaroo, who won the Derby. The
Rector was obliged to take up the money at a ruinous interest, and
had been struggling ever since. His sister helped him with a hundred
now and then, but of course his great hope was in her death— when
"hang it" (as he would say), "Matilda must leave me
half her money."
So that the Baronet and his brother had
every reason which two brothers possibly can have for being by the
ears. Sir Pitt had had the better of Bute in innumerable family
transactions. Young Pitt not only did not hunt, but set up a meeting
house under his uncle's very nose. Rawdon, it was known, was to come
in for the bulk of Miss Crawley's property. These money
transactions—these speculations in life and death—these silent
battles for reversionary spoil—make brothers very loving towards
each other in Vanity Fair. I, for my part, have known a five-pound
note to interpose and knock up a half century's attachment between
two brethren; and can't but admire, as I think what a fine and
durable thing Love is among worldly people.
It cannot be supposed that the arrival
of such a personage as Rebecca at Queen's Crawley, and her gradual
establishment in the good graces of all people there, could be
unremarked by Mrs. Bute Crawley. Mrs. Bute, who knew how many days
the sirloin of beef lasted at the Hall; how much linen was got ready
at the great wash; how many peaches were on the south wall; how many
doses her ladyship took when she was ill—for such points are
matters of intense interest to certain persons in the country—Mrs.
Bute, I say, could not pass over the Hall governess without making
every inquiry respecting her history and character. There was always
the best understanding between the servants at the Rectory and the
Hall. There was always a good glass of ale in the kitchen of the
former place for the Hall people, whose ordinary drink was very
small—and, indeed, the Rector's lady knew exactly how much malt
went to every barrel of Hall beer—ties of relationship existed
between the Hall and Rectory domestics, as between their masters; and
through these channels each family was perfectly well acquainted with
the doings of the other. That, by the way, may be set down as a
general remark. When you and your brother are friends, his doings are
indifferent to you. When you have quarrelled, all his outgoings and
incomings you know, as if you were his spy.
Very soon then after her arrival,
Rebecca began to take a regular place in Mrs. Crawley's bulletin from
the Hall. It was to this effect: "The black porker's
killed—weighed x stone—salted the sides—pig's pudding and leg
of pork for dinner. Mr. Cramp from Mudbury, over with Sir Pitt about
putting John Blackmore in gaol— Mr. Pitt at meeting (with all the
names of the people who attended) —my lady as usual—the young
ladies with the governess."
Then the report would come—the new
governess be a rare manager—Sir Pitt be very sweet on her—Mr.
Crawley too—He be reading tracts to her—"What an abandoned
wretch!" said little, eager, active, black- faced Mrs. Bute
Crawley.
Finally, the reports were that the
governess had "come round" everybody, wrote Sir Pitt's
letters, did his business, managed his accounts—had the upper hand
of the whole house, my lady, Mr. Crawley, the girls and all—at
which Mrs. Crawley declared she was an artful hussy, and had some
dreadful designs in view. Thus the doings at the Hall were the great
food for conversation at the Rectory, and Mrs. Bute's bright eyes
spied out everything that took place in the enemy's camp—everything
and a great deal besides.
Mrs. Bute Crawley to Miss Pinkerton,
The Mall, Chiswick.
Rectory, Queen's Crawley, December—.
My Dear Madam,—Although it is so many
years since I profited by your delightful and invaluable
instructions, yet I have ever retained the FONDEST and most
reverential regard for Miss Pinkerton, and DEAR Chiswick. I hope your
health is GOOD. The world and the cause of education cannot afford to
lose Miss Pinkerton for MANY MANY YEARS. When my friend, Lady
Fuddleston, mentioned that her dear girls required an instructress (I
am too poor to engage a governess for mine, but was I not educated at
Chiswick?)—"Who," I exclaimed, "can we consult but
the excellent, the incomparable Miss Pinkerton?" In a word, have
you, dear madam, any ladies on your list, whose services might be
made available to my kind friend and neighbour? I assure you she will
take no governess BUT OF YOUR CHOOSING.
My dear husband is pleased to say that
he likes EVERYTHING WHICH COMES FROM MISS PINKERTON'S SCHOOL. How I
wish I could present him and my beloved girls to the friend of my
youth, and the ADMIRED of the great lexicographer of our country! If
you ever travel into Hampshire, Mr. Crawley begs me to say, he hopes
you will adorn our RURAL RECTORY with your presence. 'Tis the humble
but happy home of
Your affectionate Martha Crawley
P.S. Mr. Crawley's brother, the
baronet, with whom we are not, alas! upon those terms of UNITY in
which it BECOMES BRETHREN TO DWELL, has a governess for his little
girls, who, I am told, had the good fortune to be educated at
Chiswick. I hear various reports of her; and as I have the tenderest
interest in my dearest little nieces, whom I wish, in spite of family
differences, to see among my own children—and as I long to be
attentive to ANY PUPIL OF YOURS— do, my dear Miss Pinkerton, tell
me the history of this young lady, whom, for YOUR SAKE, I am most
anxious to befriend.—M. C.
Miss Pinkerton to Mrs. Bute Crawley.
Johnson House, Chiswick, Dec. 18—.
Dear Madam,—I have the honour to
acknowledge your polite communication, to which I promptly reply.
'Tis most gratifying to one in my most arduous position to find that
my maternal cares have elicited a responsive affection; and to
recognize in the amiable Mrs. Bute Crawley my excellent pupil of
former years, the sprightly and accomplished Miss Martha MacTavish. I
am happy to have under my charge now the daughters of many of those
who were your contemporaries at my establishment—what pleasure it
would give me if your own beloved young ladies had need of my
instructive superintendence!
Presenting my respectful compliments to
Lady Fuddleston, I have the honour (epistolarily) to introduce to her
ladyship my two friends, Miss Tuffin and Miss Hawky.
Either of these young ladies is
PERFECTLY QUALIFIED to instruct in Greek, Latin, and the rudiments of
Hebrew; in mathematics and history; in Spanish, French, Italian, and
geography; in music, vocal and instrumental; in dancing, without the
aid of a master; and in the elements of natural sciences. In the use
of the globes both are proficients. In addition to these Miss Tuffin,
who is daughter of the late Reverend Thomas Tuffin (Fellow of Corpus
College, Cambridge), can instruct in the Syriac language, and the
elements of Constitutional law. But as she is only eighteen years of
age, and of exceedingly pleasing personal appearance, perhaps this
young lady may be objectionable in Sir Huddleston Fuddleston's
family.
Miss Letitia Hawky, on the other hand,
is not personally well- favoured. She is-twenty-nine; her face is
much pitted with the small-pox. She has a halt in her gait, red hair,
and a trifling obliquity of vision. Both ladies are endowed with
EVERY MORAL AND RELIGIOUS VIRTUE. Their terms, of course, are such as
their accomplishments merit. With my most grateful respects to the
Reverend Bute Crawley, I have the honour to be,
Dear Madam,
Your most faithful and obedient
servant, Barbara Pinkerton.
P.S. The Miss Sharp, whom you mention
as governess to Sir Pitt Crawley, Bart., M.P., was a pupil of mine,
and I have nothing to say in her disfavour. Though her appearance is
disagreeable, we cannot control the operations of nature: and though
her parents were disreputable (her father being a painter, several
times bankrupt, and her mother, as I have since learned, with horror,
a dancer at the Opera); yet her talents are considerable, and I
cannot regret that I received her OUT OF CHARITY. My dread is, lest
the principles of the mother—who was represented to me as a French
Countess, forced to emigrate in the late revolutionary horrors; but
who, as I have since found, was a person of the very lowest order and
morals—should at any time prove to be HEREDITARY in the unhappy
young woman whom I took as AN OUTCAST. But her principles have
hitherto been correct (I believe), and I am sure nothing will occur
to injure them in the elegant and refined circle of the eminent Sir
Pitt Crawley.
Miss Rebecca Sharp to Miss Amelia
Sedley.
I have not written to my beloved Amelia
for these many weeks past, for what news was there to tell of the
sayings and doings at Humdrum Hall, as I have christened it; and what
do you care whether the turnip crop is good or bad; whether the fat
pig weighed thirteen stone or fourteen; and whether the beasts thrive
well upon mangelwurzel? Every day since I last wrote has been like
its neighbour. Before breakfast, a walk with Sir Pitt and his spud;
after breakfast studies (such as they are) in the schoolroom; after
schoolroom, reading and writing about lawyers, leases, coal-mines,
canals, with Sir Pitt (whose secretary I am become); after dinner,
Mr. Crawley's discourses on the baronet's backgammon; during both of
which amusements my lady looks on with equal placidity. She has
become rather more interesting by being ailing of late, which has
brought a new visitor to the Hall, in the person of a young doctor.
Well, my dear, young women need never despair. The young doctor gave
a certain friend of yours to understand that, if she chose to be Mrs.
Glauber, she was welcome to ornament the surgery! I told his
impudence that the gilt pestle and mortar was quite ornament enough;
as if I was born, indeed, to be a country surgeon's wife! Mr. Glauber
went home seriously indisposed at his rebuff, took a cooling draught,
and is now quite cured. Sir Pitt applauded my resolution highly; he
would be sorry to lose his little secretary, I think; and I believe
the old wretch likes me as much as it is in his nature to like any
one. Marry, indeed! and with a country apothecary, after— No, no,
one cannot so soon forget old associations, about which I will talk
no more. Let us return to Humdrum Hall.
For some time past it is Humdrum Hall
no longer. My dear, Miss Crawley has arrived with her fat horses, fat
servants, fat spaniel— the great rich Miss Crawley, with seventy
thousand pounds in the five per cents., whom, or I had better say
WHICH, her two brothers adore. She looks very apoplectic, the dear
soul; no wonder her brothers are anxious about her. You should see
them struggling to settle her cushions, or to hand her coffee! "When
I come into the country," she says (for she has a great deal of
humour), "I leave my toady, Miss Briggs, at home. My brothers
are my toadies here, my dear, and a pretty pair they are!"
When she comes into the country our
hall is thrown open, and for a month, at least, you would fancy old
Sir Walpole was come to life again. We have dinner-parties, and drive
out in the coach-and-four the footmen put on their newest
canary-coloured liveries; we drink claret and champagne as if we were
accustomed to it every day. We have wax candles in the schoolroom,
and fires to warm ourselves with. Lady Crawley is made to put on the
brightest pea-green in her wardrobe, and my pupils leave off their
thick shoes and tight old tartan pelisses, and wear silk stockings
and muslin frocks, as fashionable baronets' daughters should. Rose
came in yesterday in a sad plight—the Wiltshire sow (an enormous
pet of hers) ran her down, and destroyed a most lovely flowered lilac
silk dress by dancing over it—had this happened a week ago, Sir
Pitt would have sworn frightfully, have boxed the poor wretch's ears,
and put her upon bread and water for a month. All he said was, "I'll
serve you out, Miss, when your aunt's gone," and laughed off the
accident as quite trivial. Let us hope his wrath will have passed
away before Miss Crawley's departure. I hope so, for Miss Rose's
sake, I am sure. What a charming reconciler and peacemaker money is!
Another admirable effect of Miss
Crawley and her seventy thousand pounds is to be seen in the conduct
of the two brothers Crawley. I mean the baronet and the rector, not
OUR brothers—but the former, who hate each other all the year
round, become quite loving at Christmas. I wrote to you last year how
the abominable horse-racing rector was in the habit of preaching
clumsy sermons at us at church, and how Sir Pitt snored in answer.
When Miss Crawley arrives there is no such thing as quarrelling heard
of—the Hall visits the Rectory, and vice versa—the parson and the
Baronet talk about the pigs and the poachers, and the county
business, in the most affable manner, and without quarrelling in
their cups, I believe—indeed Miss Crawley won't hear of their
quarrelling, and vows that she will leave her money to the Shropshire
Crawleys if they offend her. If they were clever people, those
Shropshire Crawleys, they might have it all, I think; but the
Shropshire Crawley is a clergyman like his Hampshire cousin, and
mortally offended Miss Crawley (who had fled thither in a fit of rage
against her impracticable brethren) by some strait-laced notions of
morality. He would have prayers in the house, I believe.
Our sermon books are shut up when Miss
Crawley arrives, and Mr. Pitt, whom she abominates, finds it
convenient to go to town. On the other hand, the young dandy—"blood,"
I believe, is the term— Captain Crawley makes his appearance, and I
suppose you will like to know what sort of a person he is.
Well, he is a very large young dandy.
He is six feet high, and speaks with a great voice; and swears a
great deal; and orders about the servants, who all adore him
nevertheless; for he is very generous of his money, and the domestics
will do anything for him. Last week the keepers almost killed a
bailiff and his man who came down from London to arrest the Captain,
and who were found lurking about the Park wall—they beat them,
ducked them, and were going to shoot them for poachers, but the
baronet interfered.
The Captain has a hearty contempt for
his father, I can see, and calls him an old PUT, an old SNOB, an old
CHAW-BACON, and numberless other pretty names. He has a DREADFUL
REPUTATION among the ladies. He brings his hunters home with him,
lives with the Squires of the county, asks whom he pleases to dinner,
and Sir Pitt dares not say no, for fear of offending Miss Crawley,
and missing his legacy when she dies of her apoplexy. Shall I tell
you a compliment the Captain paid me? I must, it is so pretty. One
evening we actually had a dance; there was Sir Huddleston Fuddleston
and his family, Sir Giles Wapshot and his young ladies, and I don't
know how many more. Well, I heard him say—"By Jove, she's a
neat little filly!" meaning your humble servant; and he did me
the honour to dance two country-dances with me. He gets on pretty
gaily with the young Squires, with whom he drinks, bets, rides, and
talks about hunting and shooting; but he says the country girls are
BORES; indeed, I don't think he is far wrong. You should see the
contempt with which they look down on poor me! When they dance I sit
and play the piano very demurely; but the other night, coming in
rather flushed from the dining-room, and seeing me employed in this
way, he swore out loud that I was the best dancer in the room, and
took a great oath that he would have the fiddlers from Mudbury.
"I'll go and play a
country-dance," said Mrs. Bute Crawley, very readily (she is a
little, black-faced old woman in a turban, rather crooked, and with
very twinkling eyes); and after the Captain and your poor little
Rebecca had performed a dance together, do you know she actually did
me the honour to compliment me upon my steps! Such a thing was never
heard of before; the proud Mrs. Bute Crawley, first cousin to the
Earl of Tiptoff, who won't condescend to visit Lady Crawley, except
when her sister is in the country. Poor Lady Crawley! during most
part of these gaieties, she is upstairs taking pills.
Mrs. Bute has all of a sudden taken a
great fancy to me. "My dear Miss Sharp," she says, "why
not bring over your girls to the Rectory?—their cousins will be so
happy to see them." I know what she means. Signor Clementi did
not teach us the piano for nothing; at which price Mrs. Bute hopes to
get a professor for her children. I can see through her schemes, as
though she told them to me; but I shall go, as I am determined to
make myself agreeable—is it not a poor governess's duty, who has
not a friend or protector in the world? The Rector's wife paid me a
score of compliments about the progress my pupils made, and thought,
no doubt, to touch my heart— poor, simple, country soul!—as if I
cared a fig about my pupils!
Your India muslin and your pink silk,
dearest Amelia, are said to become me very well. They are a good deal
worn now; but, you know, we poor girls can't afford des fraiches
toilettes. Happy, happy you! who have but to drive to St. James's
Street, and a dear mother who will give you any thing you ask.
Farewell, dearest girl,
Your affectionate Rebecca.
P.S.—I wish you could have seen the
faces of the Miss Blackbrooks (Admiral Blackbrook's daughters, my
dear), fine young ladies, with dresses from London, when Captain
Rawdon selected poor me for a partner!
When Mrs. Bute Crawley (whose artifices
our ingenious Rebecca had so soon discovered) had procured from Miss
Sharp the promise of a visit, she induced the all-powerful Miss
Crawley to make the necessary application to Sir Pitt, and the
good-natured old lady, who loved to be gay herself, and to see every
one gay and happy round about her, was quite charmed, and ready to
establish a reconciliation and intimacy between her two brothers. It
was therefore agreed that the young people of both families should
visit each other frequently for the future, and the friendship of
course lasted as long as the jovial old mediatrix was there to keep
the peace.
"Why did you ask that scoundrel,
Rawdon Crawley, to dine?" said the Rector to his lady, as they
were walking home through the park. "I don't want the fellow. He
looks down upon us country people as so many blackamoors. He's never
content unless he gets my yellow-sealed wine, which costs me ten
shillings a bottle, hang him! Besides, he's such an infernal
character—he's a gambler—he's a drunkard—he's a profligate in
every way. He shot a man in a duel—he's over head and ears in debt,
and he's robbed me and mine of the best part of Miss Crawley's
fortune. Waxy says she has him"—here the Rector shook his fist
at the moon, with something very like an oath, and added, in a
melancholious tone, "—down in her will for fifty thousand; and
there won't be above thirty to divide."
"I think she's going," said
the Rector's wife. "She was very red in the face when we left
dinner. I was obliged to unlace her."
"She drank seven glasses of
champagne," said the reverend gentleman, in a low voice; "and
filthy champagne it is, too, that my brother poisons us with—but
you women never know what's what."
"We know nothing," said Mrs.
Bute Crawley.
"She drank cherry-brandy after
dinner," continued his Reverence, "and took curacao with
her coffee. I wouldn't take a glass for a five-pound note: it kills
me with heartburn. She can't stand it, Mrs. Crawley—she must
go—flesh and blood won't bear it! and I lay five to two, Matilda
drops in a year."
Indulging in these solemn speculations,
and thinking about his debts, and his son Jim at College, and Frank
at Woolwich, and the four girls, who were no beauties, poor things,
and would not have a penny but what they got from the aunt's expected
legacy, the Rector and his lady walked on for a while.
"Pitt can't be such an infernal
villain as to sell the reversion of the living. And that Methodist
milksop of an eldest son looks to Parliament," continued Mr.
Crawley, after a pause.
"Sir Pitt Crawley will do
anything," said the Rector's wife. "We must get Miss
Crawley to make him promise it to James."
"Pitt will promise anything,"
replied the brother. "He promised he'd pay my college bills,
when my father died; he promised he'd build the new wing to the
Rectory; he promised he'd let me have Jibb's field and the Six-acre
Meadow—and much he executed his promises! And it's to this man's
son—this scoundrel, gambler, swindler, murderer of a Rawdon
Crawley, that Matilda leaves the bulk of her money. I say it's
un-Christian. By Jove, it is. The infamous dog has got every vice
except hypocrisy, and that belongs to his brother."
"Hush, my dearest love! we're in
Sir Pitt's grounds," interposed his wife.
"I say he has got every vice, Mrs.
Crawley. Don't Ma'am, bully me. Didn't he shoot Captain Marker?
Didn't he rob young Lord Dovedale at the Cocoa-Tree? Didn't he cross
the fight between Bill Soames and the Cheshire Trump, by which I lost
forty pound? You know he did; and as for the women, why, you heard
that before me, in my own magistrate's room."
"For heaven's sake, Mr. Crawley,"
said the lady, "spare me the details."
"And you ask this villain into
your house!" continued the exasperated Rector. "You, the
mother of a young family—the wife of a clergyman of the Church of
England. By Jove!"
"Bute Crawley, you are a fool,"
said the Rector's wife scornfully.
"Well, Ma'am, fool or not—and I
don't say, Martha, I'm so clever as you are, I never did. But I won't
meet Rawdon Crawley, that's flat. I'll go over to Huddleston, that I
will, and see his black greyhound, Mrs. Crawley; and I'll run
Lancelot against him for fifty. By Jove, I will; or against any dog
in England. But I won't meet that beast Rawdon Crawley."
"Mr. Crawley, you are intoxicated,
as usual," replied his wife. And the next morning, when the
Rector woke, and called for small beer, she put him in mind of his
promise to visit Sir Huddleston Fuddleston on Saturday, and as he
knew he should have a wet night, it was agreed that he might gallop
back again in time for church on Sunday morning. Thus it will be seen
that the parishioners of Crawley were equally happy in their Squire
and in their Rector.
Miss Crawley had not long been
established at the Hall before Rebecca's fascinations had won the
heart of that good-natured London rake, as they had of the country
innocents whom we have been describing. Taking her accustomed drive,
one day, she thought fit to order that "that little governess"
should accompany her to Mudbury. Before they had returned Rebecca had
made a conquest of her; having made her laugh four times, and amused
her during the whole of the little journey.
"Not let Miss Sharp dine at
table!" said she to Sir Pitt, who had arranged a dinner of
ceremony, and asked all the neighbouring baronets. "My dear
creature, do you suppose I can talk about the nursery with Lady
Fuddleston, or discuss justices' business with that goose, old Sir
Giles Wapshot? I insist upon Miss Sharp appearing. Let Lady Crawley
remain upstairs, if there is no room. But little Miss Sharp! Why,
she's the only person fit to talk to in the county!"
Of course, after such a peremptory
order as this, Miss Sharp, the governess, received commands to dine
with the illustrious company below stairs. And when Sir Huddleston
had, with great pomp and ceremony, handed Miss Crawley in to dinner,
and was preparing to take his place by her side, the old lady cried
out, in a shrill voice, "Becky Sharp! Miss Sharp! Come you and
sit by me and amuse me; and let Sir Huddleston sit by Lady Wapshot."
When the parties were over, and the
carriages had rolled away, the insatiable Miss Crawley would say,
"Come to my dressing room, Becky, and let us abuse the
company"—which, between them, this pair of friends did
perfectly. Old Sir Huddleston wheezed a great deal at dinner; Sir
Giles Wapshot had a particularly noisy manner of imbibing his soup,
and her ladyship a wink of the left eye; all of which Becky
caricatured to admiration; as well as the particulars of the night's
conversation; the politics; the war; the quarter- sessions; the
famous run with the H.H., and those heavy and dreary themes, about
which country gentlemen converse. As for the Misses Wapshot's
toilettes and Lady Fuddleston's famous yellow hat, Miss Sharp tore
them to tatters, to the infinite amusement of her audience.
"My dear, you are a perfect
trouvaille," Miss Crawley would say. "I wish you could come
to me in London, but I couldn't make a butt of you as I do of poor
Briggs no, no, you little sly creature; you are too clever—Isn't
she, Firkin?"
Mrs. Firkin (who was dressing the very
small remnant of hair which remained on Miss Crawley's pate), flung
up her head and said, "I think Miss is very clever," with
the most killing sarcastic air. In fact, Mrs. Firkin had that natural
jealousy which is one of the main principles of every honest woman.
After rebuffing Sir Huddleston
Fuddleston, Miss Crawley ordered that Rawdon Crawley should lead her
in to dinner every day, and that Becky should follow with her
cushion—or else she would have Becky's arm and Rawdon with the
pillow. "We must sit together," she said. "We're the
only three Christians in the county, my love"—in which case,
it must be confessed, that religion was at a very low ebb in the
county of Hants.
Besides being such a fine religionist,
Miss Crawley was, as we have said, an Ultra-liberal in opinions, and
always took occasion to express these in the most candid manner.
"What is birth, my dear!" she
would say to Rebecca—"Look at my brother Pitt; look at the
Huddlestons, who have been here since Henry II; look at poor Bute at
the parsonage—is any one of them equal to you in intelligence or
breeding? Equal to you—they are not even equal to poor dear Briggs,
my companion, or Bowls, my butler. You, my love, are a little
paragon—positively a little jewel—You have more brains than half
the shire—if merit had its reward you ought to be a Duchess—no,
there ought to be no duchesses at all— but you ought to have no
superior, and I consider you, my love, as my equal in every respect;
and—will you put some coals on the fire, my dear; and will you pick
this dress of mine, and alter it, you who can do it so well?" So
this old philanthropist used to make her equal run of her errands,
execute her millinery, and read her to sleep with French novels,
every night.
At this time, as some old readers may
recollect, the genteel world had been thrown into a considerable
state of excitement by two events, which, as the papers say, might
give employment to the gentlemen of the long robe. Ensign Shafton had
run away with Lady Barbara Fitzurse, the Earl of Bruin's daughter and
heiress; and poor Vere Vane, a gentleman who, up to forty, had
maintained a most respectable character and reared a numerous family,
suddenly and outrageously left his home, for the sake of Mrs.
Rougemont, the actress, who was sixty-five years of age.
"That was the most beautiful part
of dear Lord Nelson's character," Miss Crawley said. "He
went to the deuce for a woman. There must be good in a man who will
do that. I adore all impudent matches.— What I like best, is for a
nobleman to marry a miller's daughter, as Lord Flowerdale did—it
makes all the women so angry—I wish some great man would run away
with you, my dear; I'm sure you're pretty enough."
"Two post-boys!—Oh, it would be
delightful!" Rebecca owned.
"And what I like next best, is for
a poor fellow to run away with a rich girl. I have set my heart on
Rawdon running away with some one."
"A rich some one, or a poor some
one?"
"Why, you goose! Rawdon has not a
shilling but what I give him. He is crible de dettes—he must repair
his fortunes, and succeed in the world."
"Is he very clever?" Rebecca
asked.
"Clever, my love?—not an idea in
the world beyond his horses, and his regiment, and his hunting, and
his play; but he must succeed— he's so delightfully wicked. Don't
you know he has hit a man, and shot an injured father through the hat
only? He's adored in his regiment; and all the young men at Wattier's
and the Cocoa-Tree swear by him."
When Miss Rebecca Sharp wrote to her
beloved friend the account of the little ball at Queen's Crawley, and
the manner in which, for the first time, Captain Crawley had
distinguished her, she did not, strange to relate, give an altogether
accurate account of the transaction. The Captain had distinguished
her a great number of times before. The Captain had met her in a
half-score of walks. The Captain had lighted upon her in a
half-hundred of corridors and passages. The Captain had hung over her
piano twenty times of an evening (my Lady was now upstairs, being
ill, and nobody heeded her) as Miss Sharp sang. The Captain had
written her notes (the best that the great blundering dragoon could
devise and spell; but dulness gets on as well as any other quality
with women). But when he put the first of the notes into the leaves
of the song she was singing, the little governess, rising and looking
him steadily in the face, took up the triangular missive daintily,
and waved it about as if it were a cocked hat, and she, advancing to
the enemy, popped the note into the fire, and made him a very low
curtsey, and went back to her place, and began to sing away again
more merrily than ever.
"What's that?" said Miss
Crawley, interrupted in her after-dinner doze by the stoppage of the
music.
"It's a false note," Miss
Sharp said with a laugh; and Rawdon Crawley fumed with rage and
mortification.
Seeing the evident partiality of Miss
Crawley for the new governess, how good it was of Mrs. Bute Crawley
not to be jealous, and to welcome the young lady to the Rectory, and
not only her, but Rawdon Crawley, her husband's rival in the Old
Maid's five per cents! They became very fond of each other's society,
Mrs. Crawley and her nephew. He gave up hunting; he declined
entertainments at Fuddleston: he would not dine with the mess of the
depot at Mudbury: his great pleasure was to stroll over to Crawley
parsonage—whither Miss Crawley came too; and as their mamma was
ill, why not the children with Miss Sharp? So the children (little
dears!) came with Miss Sharp; and of an evening some of the party
would walk back together. Not Miss Crawley—she preferred her
carriage—but the walk over the Rectory fields, and in at the little
park wicket, and through the dark plantation, and up the checkered
avenue to Queen's Crawley, was charming in the moonlight to two such
lovers of the picturesque as the Captain and Miss Rebecca.
"O those stars, those stars!"
Miss Rebecca would say, turning her twinkling green eyes up towards
them. "I feel myself almost a spirit when I gaze upon them."
"O—ah—Gad—yes, so do I
exactly, Miss Sharp," the other enthusiast replied. "You
don't mind my cigar, do you, Miss Sharp?" Miss Sharp loved the
smell of a cigar out of doors beyond everything in the world—and
she just tasted one too, in the prettiest way possible, and gave a
little puff, and a little scream, and a little giggle, and restored
the delicacy to the Captain, who twirled his moustache, and
straightway puffed it into a blaze that glowed quite red in the dark
plantation, and swore—"Jove—aw—Gad—aw—it's the finest
segaw I ever smoked in the world aw," for his intellect and
conversation were alike brilliant and becoming to a heavy young
dragoon.
Old Sir Pitt, who was taking his pipe
and beer, and talking to John Horrocks about a "ship" that
was to be killed, espied the pair so occupied from his study-window,
and with dreadful oaths swore that if it wasn't for Miss Crawley,
he'd take Rawdon and bundle un out of doors, like a rogue as he was.
"He be a bad'n, sure enough,"
Mr. Horrocks remarked; "and his man Flethers is wuss, and have
made such a row in the housekeeper's room about the dinners and hale,
as no lord would make—but I think Miss Sharp's a match for'n, Sir
Pitt," he added, after a pause.
And so, in truth, she was—for father
and son too.
Chapter XII
*
Quite a Sentimental Chapter
We must now take leave of Arcadia, and
those amiable people practising the rural virtues there, and travel
back to London, to inquire what has become of Miss Amelia "We
don't care a fig for her," writes some unknown correspondent
with a pretty little handwriting and a pink seal to her note. "She
is fade and insipid," and adds some more kind remarks in this
strain, which I should never have repeated at all, but that they are
in truth prodigiously complimentary to the young lady whom they
concern.
Has the beloved reader, in his
experience of society, never heard similar remarks by good-natured
female friends; who always wonder what you CAN see in Miss Smith that
is so fascinating; or what COULD induce Major Jones to propose for
that silly insignificant simpering Miss Thompson, who has nothing but
her wax-doll face to recommend her? What is there in a pair of pink
cheeks and blue eyes forsooth? these dear Moralists ask, and hint
wisely that the gifts of genius, the accomplishments of the mind, the
mastery of Mangnall's Questions, and a ladylike knowledge of botany
and geology, the knack of making poetry, the power of rattling
sonatas in the Herz-manner, and so forth, are far more valuable
endowments for a female, than those fugitive charms which a few years
will inevitably tarnish. It is quite edifying to hear women speculate
upon the worthlessness and the duration of beauty.
But though virtue is a much finer
thing, and those hapless creatures who suffer under the misfortune of
good looks ought to be continually put in mind of the fate which
awaits them; and though, very likely, the heroic female character
which ladies admire is a more glorious and beautiful object than the
kind, fresh, smiling, artless, tender little domestic goddess, whom
men are inclined to worship—yet the latter and inferior sort of
women must have this consolation—that the men do admire them after
all; and that, in spite of all our kind friends' warnings and
protests, we go on in our desperate error and folly, and shall to the
end of the chapter. Indeed, for my own part, though I have been
repeatedly told by persons for whom I have the greatest respect, that
Miss Brown is an insignificant chit, and Mrs. White has nothing but
her petit minois chiffonne, and Mrs. Black has not a word to say for
herself; yet I know that I have had the most delightful conversations
with Mrs. Black (of course, my dear Madam, they are inviolable): I
see all the men in a cluster round Mrs. White's chair: all the young
fellows battling to dance with Miss Brown; and so I am tempted to
think that to be despised by her sex is a very great compliment to a
woman.
The young ladies in Amelia's society
did this for her very satisfactorily. For instance, there was
scarcely any point upon which the Misses Osborne, George's sisters,
and the Mesdemoiselles Dobbin agreed so well as in their estimate of
her very trifling merits: and their wonder that their brothers could
find any charms in her. "We are kind to her," the Misses
Osborne said, a pair of fine black-browed young ladies who had had
the best of governesses, masters, and milliners; and they treated her
with such extreme kindness and condescension, and patronised her so
insufferably, that the poor little thing was in fact perfectly dumb
in their presence, and to all outward appearance as stupid as they
thought her. She made efforts to like them, as in duty bound, and as
sisters of her future husband. She passed "long mornings"
with them—the most dreary and serious of forenoons. She drove out
solemnly in their great family coach with them, and Miss Wirt their
governess, that raw-boned Vestal. They took her to the ancient
concerts by way of a treat, and to the oratorio, and to St. Paul's to
see the charity children, where in such terror was she of her
friends, she almost did not dare be affected by the hymn the children
sang. Their house was comfortable; their papa's table rich and
handsome; their society solemn and genteel; their self-respect
prodigious; they had the best pew at the Foundling: all their habits
were pompous and orderly, and all their amusements intolerably dull
and decorous. After every one of her visits (and oh how glad she was
when they were over!) Miss Osborne and Miss Maria Osborne, and Miss
Wirt, the vestal governess, asked each other with increased wonder,
"What could George find in that creature?"
How is this? some carping reader
exclaims. How is it that Amelia, who had such a number of friends at
school, and was so beloved there, comes out into the world and is
spurned by her discriminating sex? My dear sir, there were no men at
Miss Pinkerton's establishment except the old dancing-master; and you
would not have had the girls fall out about HIM? When George, their
handsome brother, ran off directly after breakfast, and dined from
home half- a-dozen times a week, no wonder the neglected sisters felt
a little vexation. When young Bullock (of the firm of Hulker, Bullock
& Co., Bankers, Lombard Street), who had been making up to Miss
Maria the last two seasons, actually asked Amelia to dance the
cotillon, could you expect that the former young lady should be
pleased? And yet she said she was, like an artless forgiving
creature. "I'm so delighted you like dear Amelia," she said
quite eagerly to Mr. Bullock after the dance. "She's engaged to
my brother George; there's not much in her, but she's the
best-natured and most unaffected young creature: at home we're all so
fond of her." Dear girl! who can calculate the depth of
affection expressed in that enthusiastic SO?
Miss Wirt and these two affectionate
young women so earnestly and frequently impressed upon George
Osborne's mind the enormity of the sacrifice he was making, and his
romantic generosity in throwing himself away upon Amelia, that I'm
not sure but that he really thought he was one of the most deserving
characters in the British army, and gave himself up to be loved with
a good deal of easy resignation.
Somehow, although he left home every
morning, as was stated, and dined abroad six days in the week, when
his sisters believed the infatuated youth to be at Miss Sedley's
apron-strings: he was NOT always with Amelia, whilst the world
supposed him at her feet. Certain it is that on more occasions than
one, when Captain Dobbin called to look for his friend, Miss Osborne
(who was very attentive to the Captain, and anxious to hear his
military stories, and to know about the health of his dear Mamma),
would laughingly point to the opposite side of the square, and say,
"Oh, you must go to the Sedleys' to ask for George; WE never see
him from morning till night." At which kind of speech the
Captain would laugh in rather an absurd constrained manner, and turn
off the conversation, like a consummate man of the world, to some
topic of general interest, such as the Opera, the Prince's last ball
at Carlton House, or the weather—that blessing to society.
"What an innocent it is, that pet
of yours," Miss Maria would then say to Miss Jane, upon the
Captain's departure. "Did you see how he blushed at the mention
of poor George on duty?"
"It's a pity Frederick Bullock
hadn't some of his modesty, Maria," replies the elder sister,
with a toss of he head.
"Modesty! Awkwardness you mean,
Jane. I don't want Frederick to trample a hole in my muslin frock, as
Captain Dobbin did in yours at Mrs. Perkins'."
"In YOUR frock, he, he! How could
he? Wasn't he dancing with Amelia?"
The fact is, when Captain Dobbin
blushed so, and looked so awkward, he remembered a circumstance of
which he did not think it was necessary to inform the young ladies,
viz., that he had been calling at Mr. Sedley's house already, on the
pretence of seeing George, of course, and George wasn't there, only
poor little Amelia, with rather a sad wistful face, seated near the
drawing-room window, who, after some very trifling stupid talk,
ventured to ask, was there any truth in the report that the regiment
was soon to be ordered abroad; and had Captain Dobbin seen Mr.
Osborne that day?
The regiment was not ordered abroad as
yet; and Captain Dobbin had not seen George. "He was with his
sister, most likely," the Captain said. "Should he go and
fetch the truant?" So she gave him her hand kindly and
gratefully: and he crossed the square; and she waited and waited, but
George never came.
Poor little tender heart! and so it
goes on hoping and beating, and longing and trusting. You see it is
not much of a life to describe. There is not much of what you call
incident in it. Only one feeling all day—when will he come? only
one thought to sleep and wake upon. I believe George was playing
billiards with Captain Cannon in Swallow Street at the time when
Amelia was asking Captain Dobbin about him; for George was a jolly
sociable fellow, and excellent in all games of skill.
Once, after three days of absence, Miss
Amelia put on her bonnet, and actually invaded the Osborne house.
"What! leave our brother to come to us?" said the young
ladies. "Have you had a quarrel, Amelia? Do tell us!" No,
indeed, there had been no quarrel. "Who could quarrel with him?"
says she, with her eyes filled with tears. She only came over to—to
see her dear friends; they had not met for so long. And this day she
was so perfectly stupid and awkward, that the Misses Osborne and
their governess, who stared after her as she went sadly away,
wondered more than ever what George could see in poor little Amelia.
Of course they did. How was she to bare
that timid little heart for the inspection of those young ladies with
their bold black eyes? It was best that it should shrink and hide
itself. I know the Misses Osborne were excellent critics of a
Cashmere shawl, or a pink satin slip; and when Miss Turner had hers
dyed purple, and made into a spencer; and when Miss Pickford had her
ermine tippet twisted into a muff and trimmings, I warrant you the
changes did not escape the two intelligent young women before
mentioned. But there are things, look you, of a finer texture than
fur or satin, and all Solomon's glories, and all the wardrobe of the
Queen of Sheba—things whereof the beauty escapes the eyes of many
connoisseurs. And there are sweet modest little souls on which you
light, fragrant and blooming tenderly in quiet shady places; and
there are garden-ornaments, as big as brass warming-pans, that are
fit to stare the sun itself out of countenance. Miss Sedley was not
of the sunflower sort; and I say it is out of the rules of all
proportion to draw a violet of the size of a double dahlia.
No, indeed; the life of a good young
girl who is in the paternal nest as yet, can't have many of those
thrilling incidents to which the heroine of romance commonly lays
claim. Snares or shot may take off the old birds foraging
without—hawks may be abroad, from which they escape or by whom they
suffer; but the young ones in the nest have a pretty comfortable
unromantic sort of existence in the down and the straw, till it comes
to their turn, too, to get on the wing. While Becky Sharp was on her
own wing in the country, hopping on all sorts of twigs, and amid a
multiplicity of traps, and pecking up her food quite harmless and
successful, Amelia lay snug in her home of Russell Square; if she
went into the world, it was under the guidance of the elders; nor did
it seem that any evil could befall her or that opulent cheery
comfortable home in which she was affectionately sheltered. Mamma had
her morning duties, and her daily drive, and the delightful round of
visits and shopping which forms the amusement, or the profession as
you may call it, of the rich London lady. Papa conducted his
mysterious operations in the City—a stirring place in those days,
when war was raging all over Europe, and empires were being staked;
when the "Courier" newspaper had tens of thousands of
subscribers; when one day brought you a battle of Vittoria, another a
burning of Moscow, or a newsman's horn blowing down Russell Square
about dinner-time, announced such a fact as—"Battle of
Leipsic—six hundred thousand men engaged—total defeat of the
French—two hundred thousand killed." Old Sedley once or twice
came home with a very grave face; and no wonder, when such news as
this was agitating all the hearts and all the Stocks of Europe.
Meanwhile matters went on in Russell
Square, Bloomsbury, just as if matters in Europe were not in the
least disorganised. The retreat from Leipsic made no difference in
the number of meals Mr. Sambo took in the servants' hall; the allies
poured into France, and the dinner-bell rang at five o'clock just as
usual. I don't think poor Amelia cared anything about Brienne and
Montmirail, or was fairly interested in the war until the abdication
of the Emperor; when she clapped her hands and said prayers—oh, how
grateful! and flung herself into George Osborne's arms with all her
soul, to the astonishment of everybody who witnessed that ebullition
of sentiment. The fact is, peace was declared, Europe was going to be
at rest; the Corsican was overthrown, and Lieutenant Osborne's
regiment would not be ordered on service. That was the way in which
Miss Amelia reasoned. The fate of Europe was Lieutenant George
Osborne to her. His dangers being over, she sang Te Deum. He was her
Europe: her emperor: her allied monarchs and august prince regent. He
was her sun and moon; and I believe she thought the grand
illumination and ball at the Mansion House, given to the sovereigns,
were especially in honour of George Osborne.
We have talked of shift, self, and
poverty, as those dismal instructors under whom poor Miss Becky Sharp
got her education. Now, love was Miss Amelia Sedley's last tutoress,
and it was amazing what progress our young lady made under that
popular teacher. In the course of fifteen or eighteen months' daily
and constant attention to this eminent finishing governess, what a
deal of secrets Amelia learned, which Miss Wirt and the black-eyed
young ladies over the way, which old Miss Pinkerton of Chiswick
herself, had no cognizance of! As, indeed, how should any of those
prim and reputable virgins? With Misses P. and W. the tender passion
is out of the question: I would not dare to breathe such an idea
regarding them. Miss Maria Osborne, it is true, was "attached"
to Mr. Frederick Augustus Bullock, of the firm of Hulker, Bullock &
Bullock; but hers was a most respectable attachment, and she would
have taken Bullock Senior just the same, her mind being fixed—as
that of a well-bred young woman should be—upon a house in Park
Lane, a country house at Wimbledon, a handsome chariot, and two
prodigious tall horses and footmen, and a fourth of the annual
profits of the eminent firm of Hulker & Bullock, all of which
advantages were represented in the person of Frederick Augustus. Had
orange blossoms been invented then (those touching emblems of female
purity imported by us from France, where people's daughters are
universally sold in marriage), Miss Maria, I say, would have assumed
the spotless wreath, and stepped into the travelling carriage by the
side of gouty, old, bald-headed, bottle-nosed Bullock Senior; and
devoted her beautiful existence to his happiness with perfect
modesty—only the old gentleman was married already; so she bestowed
her young affections on the junior partner. Sweet, blooming, orange
flowers! The other day I saw Miss Trotter (that was), arrayed in
them, trip into the travelling carriage at St. George's, Hanover
Square, and Lord Methuselah hobbled in after. With what an engaging
modesty she pulled down the blinds of the chariot—the dear
innocent! There were half the carriages of Vanity Fair at the
wedding.
This was not the sort of love that
finished Amelia's education; and in the course of a year turned a
good young girl into a good young woman—to be a good wife
presently, when the happy time should come. This young person
(perhaps it was very imprudent in her parents to encourage her, and
abet her in such idolatry and silly romantic ideas) loved, with all
her heart, the young officer in His Majesty's service with whom we
have made a brief acquaintance. She thought about him the very first
moment on waking; and his was the very last name mentioned in her
prayers. She never had seen a man so beautiful or so clever: such a
figure on horseback: such a dancer: such a hero in general. Talk of
the Prince's bow! what was it to George's? She had seen Mr. Brummell,
whom everybody praised so. Compare such a person as that to her
George! Not amongst all the beaux at the Opera (and there were beaux
in those days with actual opera hats) was there any one to equal him.
He was only good enough to be a fairy prince; and oh, what
magnanimity to stoop to such a humble Cinderella! Miss Pinkerton
would have tried to check this blind devotion very likely, had she
been Amelia's confidante; but not with much success, depend upon it.
It is in the nature and instinct of some women. Some are made to
scheme, and some to love; and I wish any respected bachelor that
reads this may take the sort that best likes him.
While under this overpowering
impression, Miss Amelia neglected her twelve dear friends at Chiswick
most cruelly, as such selfish people commonly will do. She had but
this subject, of course, to think about; and Miss Saltire was too
cold for a confidante, and she couldn't bring her mind to tell Miss
Swartz, the woolly-haired young heiress from St. Kitt's. She had
little Laura Martin home for the holidays; and my belief is, she made
a confidante of her, and promised that Laura should come and live
with her when she was married, and gave Laura a great deal of
information regarding the passion of love, which must have been
singularly useful and novel to that little person. Alas, alas! I fear
poor Emmy had not a well- regulated mind.
What were her parents doing, not to
keep this little heart from beating so fast? Old Sedley did not seem
much to notice matters. He was graver of late, and his City affairs
absorbed him. Mrs. Sedley was of so easy and uninquisitive a nature
that she wasn't even jealous. Mr. Jos was away, being besieged by an
Irish widow at Cheltenham. Amelia had the house to herself—ah! too
much to herself sometimes—not that she ever doubted; for, to be
sure, George must be at the Horse Guards; and he can't always get
leave from Chatham; and he must see his friends and sisters, and
mingle in society when in town (he, such an ornament to every
society!); and when he is with the regiment, he is too tired to write
long letters. I know where she kept that packet she had—and can
steal in and out of her chamber like Iachimo—like Iachimo? No—that
is a bad part. I will only act Moonshine, and peep harmless into the
bed where faith and beauty and innocence lie dreaming.
But if Osborne's were short and
soldierlike letters, it must be confessed, that were Miss Sedley's
letters to Mr. Osborne to be published, we should have to extend this
novel to such a multiplicity of volumes as not the most sentimental
reader could support; that she not only filled sheets of large paper,
but crossed them with the most astonishing perverseness; that she
wrote whole pages out of poetry-books without the least pity; that
she underlined words and passages with quite a frantic emphasis; and,
in fine, gave the usual tokens of her condition. She wasn't a
heroine. Her letters were full of repetition. She wrote rather
doubtful grammar sometimes, and in her verses took all sorts of
liberties with the metre. But oh, mesdames, if you are not allowed to
touch the heart sometimes in spite of syntax, and are not to be loved
until you all know the difference between trimeter and tetrameter,
may all Poetry go to the deuce, and every schoolmaster perish
miserably!
Chapter XIII
*
Sentimental and Otherwise
I fear the gentleman to whom Miss
Amelia's letters were addressed was rather an obdurate critic. Such a
number of notes followed Lieutenant Osborne about the country, that
he became almost ashamed of the jokes of his mess-room companions
regarding them, and ordered his servant never to deliver them except
at his private apartment. He was seen lighting his cigar with one, to
the horror of Captain Dobbin, who, it is my belief, would have given
a bank-note for the document.
For some time George strove to keep the
liaison a secret. There was a woman in the case, that he admitted.
"And not the first either," said Ensign Spooney to Ensign
Stubble. "That Osborne's a devil of a fellow. There was a
judge's daughter at Demerara went almost mad about him; then there
was that beautiful quadroon girl, Miss Pye, at St. Vincent's, you
know; and since he's been home, they say he's a regular Don Giovanni,
by Jove."
Stubble and Spooney thought that to be
a "regular Don Giovanni, by Jove" was one of the finest
qualities a man could possess, and Osborne's reputation was
prodigious amongst the young men of the regiment. He was famous in
field-sports, famous at a song, famous on parade; free with his
money, which was bountifully supplied by his father. His coats were
better made than any man's in the regiment, and he had more of them.
He was adored by the men. He could drink more than any officer of the
whole mess, including old Heavytop, the colonel. He could spar better
than Knuckles, the private (who would have been a corporal but for
his drunkenness, and who had been in the prize-ring); and was the
best batter and bowler, out and out, of the regimental club. He rode
his own horse, Greased Lightning, and won the Garrison cup at Quebec
races. There were other people besides Amelia who worshipped him.
Stubble and Spooney thought him a sort of Apollo; Dobbin took him to
be an Admirable Crichton; and Mrs. Major O'Dowd acknowledged he was
an elegant young fellow, and put her in mind of Fitzjurld Fogarty,
Lord Castlefogarty's second son.
Well, Stubble and Spooney and the rest
indulged in most romantic conjectures regarding this female
correspondent of Osborne's— opining that it was a Duchess in London
who was in love with him—or that it was a General's daughter, who
was engaged to somebody else, and madly attached to him—or that it
was a Member of Parliament's lady, who proposed four horses and an
elopement—or that it was some other victim of a passion
delightfully exciting, romantic, and disgraceful to all parties, on
none of which conjectures would Osborne throw the least light,
leaving his young admirers and friends to invent and arrange their
whole history.
And the real state of the case would
never have been known at all in the regiment but for Captain Dobbin's
indiscretion. The Captain was eating his breakfast one day in the
mess-room, while Cackle, the assistant-surgeon, and the two
above-named worthies were speculating upon Osborne's intrigue—Stubble
holding out that the lady was a Duchess about Queen Charlotte's
court, and Cackle vowing she was an opera-singer of the worst
reputation. At this idea Dobbin became so moved, that though his
mouth was full of eggs and bread-and-butter at the time, and though
he ought not to have spoken at all, yet he couldn't help blurting
out, "Cackle, you're a stupid fool. You're always talking
nonsense and scandal. Osborne is not going to run off with a Duchess
or ruin a milliner. Miss Sedley is one of the most charming young
women that ever lived. He's been engaged to her ever so long; and the
man who calls her names had better not do so in my hearing."
With which, turning exceedingly red, Dobbin ceased speaking, and
almost choked himself with a cup of tea. The story was over the
regiment in half-an-hour; and that very evening Mrs. Major O'Dowd
wrote off to her sister Glorvina at O'Dowdstown not to hurry from
Dublin—young Osborne being prematurely engaged already.
She complimented the Lieutenant in an
appropriate speech over a glass of whisky-toddy that evening, and he
went home perfectly furious to quarrel with Dobbin (who had declined
Mrs. Major O'Dowd's party, and sat in his own room playing the flute,
and, I believe, writing poetry in a very melancholy manner)—to
quarrel with Dobbin for betraying his secret.
"Who the deuce asked you to talk
about my affairs?" Osborne shouted indignantly. "Why the
devil is all the regiment to know that I am going to be married? Why
is that tattling old harridan, Peggy O'Dowd, to make free with my
name at her d—d supper-table, and advertise my engagement over the
three kingdoms? After all, what right have you to say I am engaged,
or to meddle in my business at all, Dobbin?"
"It seems to me," Captain
Dobbin began.
"Seems be hanged, Dobbin,"
his junior interrupted him. "I am under obligations to you, I
know it, a d—d deal too well too; but I won't be always sermonised
by you because you're five years my senior. I'm hanged if I'll stand
your airs of superiority and infernal pity and patronage. Pity and
patronage! I should like to know in what I'm your inferior?"
"Are you engaged?" Captain
Dobbin interposed.
"What the devil's that to you or
any one here if I am?"
"Are you ashamed of it?"
Dobbin resumed.
"What right have you to ask me
that question, sir? I should like to know," George said.
"Good God, you don't mean to say
you want to break off?" asked Dobbin, starting up.
"In other words, you ask me if I'm
a man of honour," said Osborne, fiercely; "is that what you
mean? You've adopted such a tone regarding me lately that I'm ——
if I'll bear it any more."
"What have I done? I've told you
you were neglecting a sweet girl, George. I've told you that when you
go to town you ought to go to her, and not to the gambling-houses
about St. James's."
"You want your money back, I
suppose," said George, with a sneer.
"Of course I do—I always did,
didn't I?" says Dobbin. "You speak like a generous fellow."
"No, hang it, William, I beg your
pardon"—here George interposed in a fit of remorse; "you
have been my friend in a hundred ways, Heaven knows. You've got me
out of a score of scrapes. When Crawley of the Guards won that sum of
money of me I should have been done but for you: I know I should. But
you shouldn't deal so hardly with me; you shouldn't be always
catechising me. I am very fond of Amelia; I adore her, and that sort
of thing. Don't look angry. She's faultless; I know she is. But you
see there's no fun in winning a thing unless you play for it. Hang
it: the regiment's just back from the West Indies, I must have a
little fling, and then when I'm married I'll reform; I will upon my
honour, now. And—I say—Dob— don't be angry with me, and I'll
give you a hundred next month, when I know my father will stand
something handsome; and I'll ask Heavytop for leave, and I'll go to
town, and see Amelia to-morrow— there now, will that satisfy you?"
"It is impossible to be long angry
with you, George," said the good- natured Captain; "and as
for the money, old boy, you know if I wanted it you'd share your last
shilling with me."
"That I would, by Jove, Dobbin,"
George said, with the greatest generosity, though by the way he never
had any money to spare.
"Only I wish you had sown those
wild oats of yours, George. If you could have seen poor little Miss
Emmy's face when she asked me about you the other day, you would have
pitched those billiard-balls to the deuce. Go and comfort her, you
rascal. Go and write her a long letter. Do something to make her
happy; a very little will."
"I believe she's d—d fond of
me," the Lieutenant said, with a self- satisfied air; and went
off to finish the evening with some jolly fellows in the mess-room.
Amelia meanwhile, in Russell Square,
was looking at the moon, which was shining upon that peaceful spot,
as well as upon the square of the Chatham barracks, where Lieutenant
Osborne was quartered, and thinking to herself how her hero was
employed. Perhaps he is visiting the sentries, thought she; perhaps
he is bivouacking; perhaps he is attending the couch of a wounded
comrade, or studying the art of war up in his own desolate chamber.
And her kind thoughts sped away as if they were angels and had wings,
and flying down the river to Chatham and Rochester, strove to peep
into the barracks where George was. . . . All things considered, I
think it was as well the gates were shut, and the sentry allowed no
one to pass; so that the poor little white-robed angel could not hear
the songs those young fellows were roaring over the whisky-punch.
The day after the little conversation
at Chatham barracks, young Osborne, to show that he would be as good
as his word, prepared to go to town, thereby incurring Captain
Dobbin's applause. "I should have liked to make her a little
present," Osborne said to his friend in confidence, "only I
am quite out of cash until my father tips up." But Dobbin would
not allow this good nature and generosity to be balked, and so
accommodated Mr. Osborne with a few pound notes, which the latter
took after a little faint scruple.
And I dare say he would have bought
something very handsome for Amelia; only, getting off the coach in
Fleet Street, he was attracted by a handsome shirt-pin in a
jeweller's window, which he could not resist; and having paid for
that, had very little money to spare for indulging in any further
exercise of kindness. Never mind: you may be sure it was not his
presents Amelia wanted. When he came to Russell Square, her face
lighted up as if he had been sunshine. The little cares, fears,
tears, timid misgivings, sleepless fancies of I don't know how many
days and nights, were forgotten, under one moment's influence of that
familiar, irresistible smile. He beamed on her from the drawing-room
door— magnificent, with ambrosial whiskers, like a god. Sambo,
whose face as he announced Captain Osbin (having conferred a brevet
rank on that young officer) blazed with a sympathetic grin, saw the
little girl start, and flush, and jump up from her watching-place in
the window; and Sambo retreated: and as soon as the door was shut,
she went fluttering to Lieutenant George Osborne's heart as if it was
the only natural home for her to nestle in. Oh, thou poor panting
little soul! The very finest tree in the whole forest, with the
straightest stem, and the strongest arms, and the thickest foliage,
wherein you choose to build and coo, may be marked, for what you
know, and may be down with a crash ere long. What an old, old simile
that is, between man and timber!
In the meanwhile, George kissed her
very kindly on her forehead and glistening eyes, and was very
gracious and good; and she thought his diamond shirt-pin (which she
had not known him to wear before) the prettiest ornament ever seen.
The observant reader, who has marked
our young Lieutenant's previous behaviour, and has preserved our
report of the brief conversation which he has just had with Captain
Dobbin, has possibly come to certain conclusions regarding the
character of Mr. Osborne. Some cynical Frenchman has said that there
are two parties to a love- transaction: the one who loves and the
other who condescends to be so treated. Perhaps the love is
occasionally on the man's side; perhaps on the lady's. Perhaps some
infatuated swain has ere this mistaken insensibility for modesty,
dulness for maiden reserve, mere vacuity for sweet bashfulness, and a
goose, in a word, for a swan. Perhaps some beloved female subscriber
has arrayed an ass in the splendour and glory of her imagination;
admired his dulness as manly simplicity; worshipped his selfishness
as manly superiority; treated his stupidity as majestic gravity, and
used him as the brilliant fairy Titania did a certain weaver at
Athens. I think I have seen such comedies of errors going on in the
world. But this is certain, that Amelia believed her lover to be one
of the most gallant and brilliant men in the empire: and it is
possible Lieutenant Osborne thought so too.
He was a little wild: how many young
men are; and don't girls like a rake better than a milksop? He hadn't
sown his wild oats as yet, but he would soon: and quit the army now
that peace was proclaimed; the Corsican monster locked up at Elba;
promotion by consequence over; and no chance left for the display of
his undoubted military talents and valour: and his allowance, with
Amelia's settlement, would enable them to take a snug place in the
country somewhere, in a good sporting neighbourhood; and he would
hunt a little, and farm a little; and they would be very happy. As
for remaining in the army as a married man, that was impossible.
Fancy Mrs. George Osborne in lodgings in a county town; or, worse
still, in the East or West Indies, with a society of officers, and
patronized by Mrs. Major O'Dowd! Amelia died with laughing at
Osborne's stories about Mrs. Major O'Dowd. He loved her much too
fondly to subject her to that horrid woman and her vulgarities, and
the rough treatment of a soldier's wife. He didn't care for
himself—not he; but his dear little girl should take the place in
society to which, as his wife, she was entitled: and to these
proposals you may be sure she acceded, as she would to any other from
the same author.
Holding this kind of conversation, and
building numberless castles in the air (which Amelia adorned with all
sorts of flower-gardens, rustic walks, country churches, Sunday
schools, and the like; while George had his mind's eye directed to
the stables, the kennel, and the cellar), this young pair passed away
a couple of hours very pleasantly; and as the Lieutenant had only
that single day in town, and a great deal of most important business
to transact, it was proposed that Miss Emmy should dine with her
future sisters-in-law. This invitation was accepted joyfully. He
conducted her to his sisters; where he left her talking and prattling
in a way that astonished those ladies, who thought that George might
make something of her; and he then went off to transact his business.
In a word, he went out and ate ices at
a pastry-cook's shop in Charing Cross; tried a new coat in Pall Mall;
dropped in at the Old Slaughters', and called for Captain Cannon;
played eleven games at billiards with the Captain, of which he won
eight, and returned to Russell Square half an hour late for dinner,
but in very good humour.
It was not so with old Mr. Osborne.
When that gentleman came from the City, and was welcomed in the
drawing-room by his daughters and the elegant Miss Wirt, they saw at
once by his face—which was puffy, solemn, and yellow at the best of
times—and by the scowl and twitching of his black eyebrows, that
the heart within his large white waistcoat was disturbed and uneasy.
When Amelia stepped forward to salute him, which she always did with
great trembling and timidity, he gave a surly grunt of recognition,
and dropped the little hand out of his great hirsute paw without any
attempt to hold it there. He looked round gloomily at his eldest
daughter; who, comprehending the meaning of his look, which asked
unmistakably, "Why the devil is she here?" said at once:
"George is in town, Papa; and has
gone to the Horse Guards, and will be back to dinner."
"O he is, is he? I won't have the
dinner kept waiting for him, Jane"; with which this worthy man
lapsed into his particular chair, and then the utter silence in his
genteel, well-furnished drawing- room was only interrupted by the
alarmed ticking of the great French clock.
When that chronometer, which was
surmounted by a cheerful brass group of the sacrifice of Iphigenia,
tolled five in a heavy cathedral tone, Mr. Osborne pulled the bell at
his right hand- violently, and the butler rushed up.
"Dinner!" roared Mr. Osborne.
"Mr. George isn't come in, sir,"
interposed the man.
"Damn Mr. George, sir. Am I master
of the house? DINNER!" Mr. Osborne scowled. Amelia trembled. A
telegraphic communication of eyes passed between the other three
ladies. The obedient bell in the lower regions began ringing the
announcement of the meal. The tolling over, the head of the family
thrust his hands into the great tail-pockets of his great blue coat
with brass buttons, and without waiting for a further announcement
strode downstairs alone, scowling over his shoulder at the four
females.
"What's the matter now, my dear?"
asked one of the other, as they rose and tripped gingerly behind the
sire. "I suppose the funds are falling," whispered Miss
Wirt; and so, trembling and in silence, this hushed female company
followed their dark leader. They took their places in silence. He
growled out a blessing, which sounded as gruffly as a curse. The
great silver dish-covers were removed. Amelia trembled in her place,
for she was next to the awful Osborne, and alone on her side of the
table—the gap being occasioned by the absence of George.
"Soup?" says Mr. Osborne,
clutching the ladle, fixing his eyes on her, in a sepulchral tone;
and having helped her and the rest, did not speak for a while.
"Take Miss Sedley's plate away,"
at last he said. "She can't eat the soup—no more can I. It's
beastly. Take away the soup, Hicks, and to-morrow turn the cook out
of the house, Jane."
Having concluded his observations upon
the soup, Mr. Osborne made a few curt remarks respecting the fish,
also of a savage and satirical tendency, and cursed Billingsgate with
an emphasis quite worthy of the place. Then he lapsed into silence,
and swallowed sundry glasses of wine, looking more and more terrible,
till a brisk knock at the door told of George's arrival when
everybody began to rally.
"He could not come before. General
Daguilet had kept him waiting at the Horse Guards. Never mind soup or
fish. Give him anything—he didn't care what. Capital mutton—capital
everything." His good humour contrasted with his father's
severity; and he rattled on unceasingly during dinner, to the delight
of all—of one especially, who need not be mentioned.
As soon as the young ladies had
discussed the orange and the glass of wine which formed the ordinary
conclusion of the dismal banquets at Mr. Osborne's house, the signal
to make sail for the drawing-room was given, and they all arose and
departed. Amelia hoped George would soon join them there. She began
playing some of his favourite waltzes (then newly imported) at the
great carved-legged, leather- cased grand piano in the drawing-room
overhead. This little artifice did not bring him. He was deaf to the
waltzes; they grew fainter and fainter; the discomfited performer
left the huge instrument presently; and though her three friends
performed some of the loudest and most brilliant new pieces of their
repertoire, she did not hear a single note, but sate thinking, and
boding evil. Old Osborne's scowl, terrific always, had never before
looked so deadly to her. His eyes followed her out of the room, as if
she had been guilty of something. When they brought her coffee, she
started as though it were a cup of poison which Mr. Hicks, the
butler, wished to propose to her. What mystery was there lurking? Oh,
those women! They nurse and cuddle their presentiments, and make
darlings of their ugliest thoughts, as they do of their deformed
children.
The gloom on the paternal countenance
had also impressed George Osborne with anxiety. With such eyebrows,
and a look so decidedly bilious, how was he to extract that money
from the governor, of which George was consumedly in want? He began
praising his father's wine. That was generally a successful means of
cajoling the old gentleman.
"We never got such Madeira in the
West Indies, sir, as yours. Colonel Heavytop took off three bottles
of that you sent me down, under his belt the other day."
"Did he?" said the old
gentleman. "It stands me in eight shillings a bottle."
"Will you take six guineas a dozen
for it, sir?" said George, with a laugh. "There's one of
the greatest men in the kingdom wants some."
"Does he?" growled the
senior. "Wish he may get it."
"When General Daguilet was at
Chatham, sir, Heavytop gave him a breakfast, and asked me for some of
the wine. The General liked it just as well—wanted a pipe for the
Commander-in-Chief. He's his Royal Highness's right-hand man."
"It is devilish fine wine,"
said the Eyebrows, and they looked more good-humoured; and George was
going to take advantage of this complacency, and bring the supply
question on the mahogany, when the father, relapsing into solemnity,
though rather cordial in manner, bade him ring the bell for claret.
"And we'll see if that's as good as the Madeira, George, to
which his Royal Highness is welcome, I'm sure. And as we are drinking
it, I'll talk to you about a matter of importance."
Amelia heard the claret bell ringing as
she sat nervously upstairs. She thought, somehow, it was a mysterious
and presentimental bell. Of the presentiments which some people are
always having, some surely must come right.
"What I want to know, George,"
the old gentleman said, after slowly smacking his first bumper—"what
I want to know is, how you and—ah- -that little thing upstairs, are
carrying on?"
"I think, sir, it is not hard to
see," George said, with a self- satisfied grin. "Pretty
clear, sir.—What capital wine!"
"What d'you mean, pretty clear,
sir?"
"Why, hang it, sir, don't push me
too hard. I'm a modest man. I— ah—I don't set up to be a
lady-killer; but I do own that she's as devilish fond of me as she
can be. Anybody can see that with half an eye."
"And you yourself?"
"Why, sir, didn't you order me to
marry her, and ain't I a good boy? Haven't our Papas settled it ever
so long?"
"A pretty boy, indeed. Haven't I
heard of your doings, sir, with Lord Tarquin, Captain Crawley of the
Guards, the Honourable Mr. Deuceace and that set. Have a care sir,
have a care."
The old gentleman pronounced these
aristocratic names with the greatest gusto. Whenever he met a great
man he grovelled before him, and my-lorded him as only a free-born
Briton can do. He came home and looked out his history in the
Peerage: he introduced his name into his daily conversation; he
bragged about his Lordship to his daughters. He fell down prostrate
and basked in him as a Neapolitan beggar does in the sun. George was
alarmed when he heard the names. He feared his father might have been
informed of certain transactions at play. But the old moralist eased
him by saying serenely:
"Well, well, young men will be
young men. And the comfort to me is, George, that living in the best
society in England, as I hope you do; as I think you do; as my means
will allow you to do—"
"Thank you, sir," says
George, making his point at once. "One can't live with these
great folks for nothing; and my purse, sir, look at it"; and he
held up a little token which had been netted by Amelia, and contained
the very last of Dobbin's pound notes.
"You shan't want, sir. The British
merchant's son shan't want, sir. My guineas are as good as theirs,
George, my boy; and I don't grudge 'em. Call on Mr. Chopper as you go
through the City to-morrow; he'll have something for you. I don't
grudge money when I know you're in good society, because I know that
good society can never go wrong. There's no pride in me. I was a
humbly born man—but you have had advantages. Make a good use of
'em. Mix with the young nobility. There's many of 'em who can't spend
a dollar to your guinea, my boy. And as for the pink bonnets (here
from under the heavy eyebrows there came a knowing and not very
pleasing leer)—why boys will be boys. Only there's one thing I
order you to avoid, which, if you do not, I'll cut you off with a
shilling, by Jove; and that's gambling."
"Oh, of course, sir," said
George.
"But to return to the other
business about Amelia: why shouldn't you marry higher than a
stockbroker's daughter, George—that's what I want to know?"
"It's a family business,
sir,".says George, cracking filberts. "You and Mr. Sedley
made the match a hundred years ago."
"I don't deny it; but people's
positions alter, sir. I don't deny that Sedley made my fortune, or
rather put me in the way of acquiring, by my own talents and genius,
that proud position, which, I may say, I occupy in the tallow trade
and the City of London. I've shown my gratitude to Sedley; and he's
tried it of late, sir, as my cheque-book can show. George! I tell you
in confidence I don't like the looks of Mr. Sedley's affairs. My
chief clerk, Mr. Chopper, does not like the looks of 'em, and he's an
old file, and knows 'Change as well as any man in London. Hulker &
Bullock are looking shy at him. He's been dabbling on his own account
I fear. They say the Jeune Amelie was his, which was taken by the
Yankee privateer Molasses. And that's flat—unless I see Amelia's
ten thousand down you don't marry her. I'll have no lame duck's
daughter in my family. Pass the wine, sir—or ring for coffee."
With which Mr. Osborne spread out the
evening paper, and George knew from this signal that the colloquy was
ended, and that his papa was about to take a nap.
He hurried upstairs to Amelia in the
highest spirits. What was it that made him more attentive to her on
that night than he had been for a long time—more eager to amuse
her, more tender, more brilliant in talk? Was it that his generous
heart warmed to her at the prospect of misfortune; or that the idea
of losing the dear little prize made him value it more?
She lived upon the recollections of
that happy evening for many days afterwards, remembering his words;
his looks; the song he sang; his attitude, as he leant over her or
looked at her from a distance. As it seemed to her, no night ever
passed so quickly at Mr. Osborne's house before; and for once this
young person was almost provoked to be angry by the premature arrival
of Mr. Sambo with her shawl.
George came and took a tender leave of
her the next morning; and then hurried off to the City, where he
visited Mr. Chopper, his father's head man, and received from that
gentleman a document which he exchanged at Hulker & Bullock's for
a whole pocketful of money. As George entered the house, old John
Sedley was passing out of the banker's parlour, looking very dismal.
But his godson was much too elated to mark the worthy stockbroker's
depression, or the dreary eyes which the kind old gentleman cast upon
him. Young Bullock did not come grinning out of the parlour with him
as had been his wont in former years.
And as the swinging doors of Hulker,
Bullock & Co. closed upon Mr. Sedley, Mr. Quill, the cashier
(whose benevolent occupation it is to hand out crisp bank-notes from
a drawer and dispense sovereigns out of a copper shovel), winked at
Mr. Driver, the clerk at the desk on his right. Mr. Driver winked
again.
"No go," Mr. D. whispered.
"Not at no price," Mr. Q.
said. "Mr. George Osborne, sir, how will you take it?"
George crammed eagerly a quantity of notes into his pockets, and paid
Dobbin fifty pounds that very evening at mess.
That very evening Amelia wrote him the
tenderest of long letters. Her heart was overflowing with tenderness,
but it still foreboded evil. What was the cause of Mr. Osborne's dark
looks? she asked. Had any difference arisen between him and her papa?
Her poor papa returned so melancholy from the City, that all were
alarmed about him at home—in fine, there were four pages of loves
and fears and hopes and forebodings.
"Poor little Emmy—dear little
Emmy. How fond she is of me," George said, as he perused the
missive—"and Gad, what a headache that mixed punch has given
me!" Poor little Emmy, indeed.
Chapter XIV
*
Miss Crawley at Home
About this time there drove up to an
exceedingly snug and well- appointed house in Park Lane, a travelling
chariot with a lozenge on the panels, a discontented female in a
green veil and crimped curls on the rumble, and a large and
confidential man on the box. It was the equipage of our friend Miss
Crawley, returning from Hants. The carriage windows were shut; the
fat spaniel, whose head and tongue ordinarily lolled out of one of
them, reposed on the lap of the discontented female. When the vehicle
stopped, a large round bundle of shawls was taken out of the carriage
by the aid of various domestics and a young lady who accompanied the
heap of cloaks. That bundle contained Miss Crawley, who was conveyed
upstairs forthwith, and put into a bed and chamber warmed properly as
for the reception of an invalid. Messengers went off for her
physician and medical man. They came, consulted, prescribed,
vanished. The young companion of Miss Crawley, at the conclusion of
their interview, came in to receive their instructions, and
administered those antiphlogistic medicines which the eminent men
ordered.
Captain Crawley of the Life Guards rode
up from Knightsbridge Barracks the next day; his black charger pawed
the straw before his invalid aunt's door. He was most affectionate in
his inquiries regarding that amiable relative. There seemed to be
much source of apprehension. He found Miss Crawley's maid (the
discontented female) unusually sulky and despondent; he found Miss
Briggs, her dame de compagnie, in tears alone in the drawing-room.
She had hastened home, hearing of her beloved friend's illness. She
wished to fly to her couch, that couch which she, Briggs, had so
often smoothed in the hour of sickness. She was denied admission to
Miss Crawley's apartment. A stranger was administering her
medicines—a stranger from the country—an odious Miss . . . —tears
choked the utterance of the dame de compagnie, and she buried her
crushed affections and her poor old red nose in her pocket
handkerchief.
Rawdon Crawley sent up his name by the
sulky femme de chambre, and Miss Crawley's new companion, coming
tripping down from the sick- room, put a little hand into his as he
stepped forward eagerly to meet her, gave a glance of great scorn at
the bewildered Briggs, and beckoning the young Guardsman out of the
back drawing-room, led him downstairs into that now desolate
dining-parlour, where so many a good dinner had been celebrated.
Here these two talked for ten minutes,
discussing, no doubt, the symptoms of the old invalid above stairs;
at the end of which period the parlour bell was rung briskly, and
answered on that instant by Mr. Bowls, Miss Crawley's large
confidential butler (who, indeed, happened to be at the keyhole
during the most part of the interview); and the Captain coming out,
curling his mustachios, mounted the black charger pawing among the
straw, to the admiration of the little blackguard boys collected in
the street. He looked in at the dining-room window, managing his
horse, which curvetted and capered beautifully—for one instant the
young person might be seen at the window, when her figure vanished,
and, doubtless, she went upstairs again to resume the affecting
duties of benevolence.
Who could this young woman be, I
wonder? That evening a little dinner for two persons was laid in the
dining-room—when Mrs. Firkin, the lady's maid, pushed into her
mistress's apartment, and bustled about there during the vacancy
occasioned by the departure of the new nurse—and the latter and
Miss Briggs sat down to the neat little meal.
Briggs was so much choked by emotion
that she could hardly take a morsel of meat. The young person carved
a fowl with the utmost delicacy, and asked so distinctly for
egg-sauce, that poor Briggs, before whom that delicious condiment was
placed, started, made a great clattering with the ladle, and once
more fell back in the most gushing hysterical state.
"Had you not better give Miss
Briggs a glass of wine?" said the person to Mr. Bowls, the large
confidential man. He did so. Briggs seized it mechanically, gasped it
down convulsively, moaned a little, and began to play with the
chicken on her plate.
"I think we shall be able to help
each other," said the person with great suavity: "and shall
have no need of Mr. Bowls's kind services. Mr. Bowls, if you please,
we will ring when we want you." He went downstairs, where, by
the way, he vented the most horrid curses upon the unoffending
footman, his subordinate.
"It is a pity you take on so, Miss
Briggs," the young lady said, with a cool, slightly sarcastic,
air.
"My dearest friend is so ill, and
wo-o-on't see me," gurgled out Briggs in an agony of renewed
grief.
"She's not very ill any more.
Console yourself, dear Miss Briggs. She has only overeaten
herself—that is all. She is greatly better. She will soon be quite
restored again. She is weak from being cupped and from medical
treatment, but she will rally immediately. Pray console yourself, and
take a little more wine."
"But why, why won't she see me
again?" Miss Briggs bleated out. "Oh, Matilda, Matilda,
after three-and-twenty years' tenderness! is this the return to your
poor, poor Arabella?"
"Don't cry too much, poor
Arabella," the other said (with ever so little of a grin); "she
only won't see you, because she says you don't nurse her as well as I
do. It's no pleasure to me to sit up all night. I wish you might do
it instead."
"Have I not tended that dear couch
for years?" Arabella said, "and now—"
"Now she prefers somebody else.
Well, sick people have these fancies, and must be humoured. When
she's well I shall go."
"Never, never," Arabella
exclaimed, madly inhaling her salts-bottle.
"Never be well or never go, Miss
Briggs?" the other said, with the same provoking good-nature.
"Pooh—she will be well in a fortnight, when I shall go back to
my little pupils at Queen's Crawley, and to their mother, who is a
great deal more sick than our friend. You need not be jealous about
me, my dear Miss Briggs. I am a poor little girl without any friends,
or any harm in me. I don't want to supplant you in Miss Crawley's
good graces. She will forget me a week after I am gone: and her
affection for you has been the work of years. Give me a little wine
if you please, my dear Miss Briggs, and let us be friends. I'm sure I
want friends."
The placable and soft-hearted Briggs
speechlessly pushed out her hand at this appeal; but she felt the
desertion most keenly for all that, and bitterly, bitterly moaned the
fickleness of her Matilda. At the end of half an hour, the meal over,
Miss Rebecca Sharp (for such, astonishing to state, is the name of
her who has been described ingeniously as "the person"
hitherto), went upstairs again to her patient's rooms, from which,
with the most engaging politeness, she eliminated poor Firkin. "Thank
you, Mrs. Firkin, that will quite do; how nicely you make it! I will
ring when anything is wanted." "Thank you"; and Firkin
came downstairs in a tempest of jealousy, only the more dangerous
because she was forced to confine it in her own bosom.
Could it be the tempest which, as she
passed the landing of the first floor, blew open the drawing-room
door? No; it was stealthily opened by the hand of Briggs. Briggs had
been on the watch. Briggs too well heard the creaking Firkin descend
the stairs, and the clink of the spoon and gruel-basin the neglected
female carried.
"Well, Firkin?" says she, as
the other entered the apartment. "Well, Jane?"
"Wuss and wuss, Miss B.,"
Firkin said, wagging her head.
"Is she not better then?"
"She never spoke but once, and I
asked her if she felt a little more easy, and she told me to hold my
stupid tongue. Oh, Miss B., I never thought to have seen this day!"
And the water-works again began to play.
"What sort of a person is this
Miss Sharp, Firkin? I little thought, while enjoying my Christmas
revels in the elegant home of my firm friends, the Reverend Lionel
Delamere and his amiable lady, to find a stranger had taken my place
in the affections of my dearest, my still dearest Matilda!" Miss
Briggs, it will be seen by her language, was of a literary and
sentimental turn, and had once published a volume of poems—"Trills
of the Nightingale"—by subscription.
"Miss B., they are all infatyated
about that young woman," Firkin replied. "Sir Pitt wouldn't
have let her go, but he daredn't refuse Miss Crawley anything. Mrs.
Bute at the Rectory jist as bad—never happy out of her sight. The
Capting quite wild about her. Mr. Crawley mortial jealous. Since Miss
C. was took ill, she won't have nobody near her but Miss Sharp, I
can't tell for where nor for why; and I think somethink has bewidged
everybody."
Rebecca passed that night in constant
watching upon Miss Crawley; the next night the old lady slept so
comfortably, that Rebecca had time for several hours' comfortable
repose herself on the sofa, at the foot of her patroness's bed; very
soon, Miss Crawley was so well that she sat up and laughed heartily
at a perfect imitation of Miss Briggs and her grief, which Rebecca
described to her. Briggs' weeping snuffle, and her manner of using
the handkerchief, were so completely rendered that Miss Crawley
became quite cheerful, to the admiration of the doctors when they
visited her, who usually found this worthy woman of the world, when
the least sickness attacked her, under the most abject depression and
terror of death.
Captain Crawley came every day, and
received bulletins from Miss Rebecca respecting his aunt's health.
This improved so rapidly, that poor Briggs was allowed to see her
patroness; and persons with tender hearts may imagine the smothered
emotions of that sentimental female, and the affecting nature of the
interview.
Miss Crawley liked to have Briggs in a
good deal soon. Rebecca used to mimic her to her face with the most
admirable gravity, thereby rendering the imitation doubly piquant to
her worthy patroness.
The causes which had led to the
deplorable illness of Miss Crawley, and her departure from her
brother's house in the country, were of such an unromantic nature
that they are hardly fit to be explained in this genteel and
sentimental novel. For how is it possible to hint of a delicate
female, living in good society, that she ate and drank too much, and
that a hot supper of lobsters profusely enjoyed at the Rectory was
the reason of an indisposition which Miss Crawley herself persisted
was solely attributable to the dampness of the weather? The attack
was so sharp that Matilda—as his Reverence expressed it—was very
nearly "off the hooks"; all the family were in a fever of
expectation regarding the will, and Rawdon Crawley was making sure of
at least forty thousand pounds before the commencement of the London
season. Mr. Crawley sent over a choice parcel of tracts, to prepare
her for the change from Vanity Fair and Park Lane for another world;
but a good doctor from Southampton being called in in time,
vanquished the lobster which was so nearly fatal to her, and gave her
sufficient strength to enable her to return to London. The Baronet
did not disguise his exceeding mortification at the turn which
affairs took.
While everybody was attending on Miss
Crawley, and messengers every hour from the Rectory were carrying
news of her health to the affectionate folks there, there was a lady
in another part of the house, being exceedingly ill, of whom no one
took any notice at all; and this was the lady of Crawley herself. The
good doctor shook his head after seeing her; to which visit Sir Pitt
consented, as it could be paid without a fee; and she was left fading
away in her lonely chamber, with no more heed paid to her than to a
weed in the park.
The young ladies, too, lost much of the
inestimable benefit of their governess's instruction, So affectionate
a nurse was Miss Sharp, that Miss Crawley would take her medicines
from no other hand. Firkin had been deposed long before her
mistress's departure from the country. That faithful attendant found
a gloomy consolation on returning to London, in seeing Miss Briggs
suffer the same pangs of jealousy and undergo the same faithless
treatment to which she herself had been subject.
Captain Rawdon got an extension of
leave on his aunt's illness, and remained dutifully at home. He was
always in her antechamber. (She lay sick in the state bedroom, into
which you entered by the little blue saloon.) His father was always
meeting him there; or if he came down the corridor ever so quietly,
his father's door was sure to open, and the hyena face of the old
gentleman to glare out. What was it set one to watch the other so? A
generous rivalry, no doubt, as to which should be most attentive to
the dear sufferer in the state bedroom. Rebecca used to come out and
comfort both of them; or one or the other of them rather. Both of
these worthy gentlemen were most anxious to have news of the invalid
from her little confidential messenger.
At dinner—to which meal she descended
for half an hour—she kept the peace between them: after which she
disappeared for the night; when Rawdon would ride over to the depot
of the 150th at Mudbury, leaving his papa to the society of Mr.
Horrocks and his rum and water. She passed as weary a fortnight as
ever mortal spent in Miss Crawley's sick-room; but her little nerves
seemed to be of iron, as she was quite unshaken by the duty and the
tedium of the sick- chamber.
She never told until long afterwards
how painful that duty was; how peevish a patient was the jovial old
lady; how angry; how sleepless; in what horrors of death; during what
long nights she lay moaning, and in almost delirious agonies
respecting that future world which she quite ignored when she was in
good health.—Picture to yourself, oh fair young reader, a worldly,
selfish, graceless, thankless, religionless old woman, writhing in
pain and fear, and without her wig. Picture her to yourself, and ere
you be old, learn to love and pray!
Sharp watched this graceless bedside
with indomitable patience. Nothing escaped her; and, like a prudent
steward, she found a use for everything. She told many a good story
about Miss Crawley's illness in after days—stories which made the
lady blush through her artificial carnations. During the illness she
was never out of temper; always alert; she slept light, having a
perfectly clear conscience; and could take that refreshment at almost
any minute's warning. And so you saw very few traces of fatigue in
her appearance. Her face might be a trifle paler, and the circles
round her eyes a little blacker than usual; but whenever she came out
from the sick-room she was always smiling, fresh, and neat, and
looked as trim in her little dressing-gown and cap, as in her
smartest evening suit.
The Captain thought so, and raved about
her in uncouth convulsions. The barbed shaft of love had penetrated
his dull hide. Six weeks— appropinquity—opportunity—had
victimised him completely. He made a confidante of his aunt at the
Rectory, of all persons in the world. She rallied him about it; she
had perceived his folly; she warned him; she finished by owning that
little Sharp was the most clever, droll, odd, good-natured, simple,
kindly creature in England. Rawdon must not trifle with her
affections, though—dear Miss Crawley would never pardon him for
that; for she, too, was quite overcome by the little governess, and
loved Sharp like a daughter. Rawdon must go away—go back to his
regiment and naughty London, and not play with a poor artless girl's
feelings.
Many and many a time this good-natured
lady, compassionating the forlorn life-guardsman's condition, gave
him an opportunity of seeing Miss Sharp at the Rectory, and of
walking home with her, as we have seen. When men of a certain sort,
ladies, are in love, though they see the hook and the string, and the
whole apparatus with which they are to be taken, they gorge the bait
nevertheless— they must come to it—they must swallow it—and are
presently struck and landed gasping. Rawdon saw there was a manifest
intention on Mrs. Bute's part to captivate him with Rebecca. He was
not very wise; but he was a man about town, and had seen several
seasons. A light dawned upon his dusky soul, as he thought, through a
speech of Mrs. Bute's.
"Mark my words, Rawdon," she
said. "You will have Miss Sharp one day for your relation."
"What relation—my cousin, hey,
Mrs. Bute? James sweet on her, hey?" inquired the waggish
officer.
"More than that," Mrs. Bute
said, with a flash from her black eyes.
"Not Pitt? He sha'n't have her.
The sneak a'n't worthy of her. He's booked to Lady Jane Sheepshanks."
"You men perceive nothing. You
silly, blind creature—if anything happens to Lady Crawley, Miss
Sharp will be your mother-in-law; and that's what will happen."
Rawdon Crawley, Esquire, gave vent to a
prodigious whistle, in token of astonishment at this announcement. He
couldn't deny it. His father's evident liking for Miss Sharp had not
escaped him. He knew the old gentleman's character well; and a more
unscrupulous old— whyou—he did not conclude the sentence, but
walked home, curling his mustachios, and convinced he had found a
clue to Mrs. Bute's mystery.
"By Jove, it's too bad,"
thought Rawdon, "too bad, by Jove! I do believe the woman wants
the poor girl to be ruined, in order that she shouldn't come into the
family as Lady Crawley."
When he saw Rebecca alone, he rallied
her about his father's attachment in his graceful way. She flung up
her head scornfully, looked him full in the face, and said,
"Well, suppose he is fond of me. I
know he is, and others too. You don't think I am afraid of him,
Captain Crawley? You don't suppose I can't defend my own honour,"
said the little woman, looking as stately as a queen.
"Oh, ah, why—give you fair
warning—look out, you know—that's all," said the
mustachio-twiddler.
"You hint at something not
honourable, then?" said she, flashing out.
"O Gad—really—Miss Rebecca,"
the heavy dragoon interposed.
"Do you suppose I have no feeling
of self-respect, because I am poor and friendless, and because rich
people have none? Do you think, because I am a governess, I have not
as much sense, and feeling, and good breeding as you gentlefolks in
Hampshire? I'm a Montmorency. Do you suppose a Montmorency is not as
good as a Crawley?"
When Miss Sharp was agitated, and
alluded to her maternal relatives, she spoke with ever so slight a
foreign accent, which gave a great charm to her clear ringing voice.
"No," she continued, kindling as she spoke to the Captain;
"I can endure poverty, but not shame— neglect, but not insult;
and insult from—from you."
Her feelings gave way, and she burst
into tears.
"Hang it, Miss Sharp—Rebecca—by
Jove—upon my soul, I wouldn't for a thousand pounds. Stop,
Rebecca!"
She was gone. She drove out with Miss
Crawley that day. It was before the latter's illness. At dinner she
was unusually brilliant and lively; but she would take no notice of
the hints, or the nods, or the clumsy expostulations of the
humiliated, infatuated guardsman. Skirmishes of this sort passed
perpetually during the little campaign—tedious to relate, and
similar in result. The Crawley heavy cavalry was maddened by defeat,
and routed every day.
If the Baronet of Queen's Crawley had
not had the fear of losing his sister's legacy before his eyes, he
never would have permitted his dear girls to lose the educational
blessings which their invaluable governess was conferring upon them.
The old house at home seemed a desert without her, so useful and
pleasant had Rebecca made herself there. Sir Pitt's letters were not
copied and corrected; his books not made up; his household business
and manifold schemes neglected, now that his little secretary was
away. And it was easy to see how necessary such an amanuensis was to
him, by the tenor and spelling of the numerous letters which he sent
to her, entreating her and commanding her to return. Almost every day
brought a frank from the Baronet, enclosing the most urgent prayers
to Becky for her return, or conveying pathetic statements to Miss
Crawley, regarding the neglected state of his daughters' education;
of which documents Miss Crawley took very little heed.
Miss Briggs was not formally dismissed,
but her place as companion was a sinecure and a derision; and her
company was the fat spaniel in the drawing-room, or occasionally the
discontented Firkin in the housekeeper's closet. Nor though the old
lady would by no means hear of Rebecca's departure, was the latter
regularly installed in office in Park Lane. Like many wealthy people,
it was Miss Crawley's habit to accept as much service as she could
get from her inferiors; and good-naturedly to take leave of them when
she no longer found them useful. Gratitude among certain rich folks
is scarcely natural or to be thought of. They take needy people's
services as their due. Nor have you, O poor parasite and humble
hanger-on, much reason to complain! Your friendship for Dives is
about as sincere as the return which it usually gets. It is money you
love, and not the man; and were Croesus and his footman to change
places you know, you poor rogue, who would have the benefit of your
allegiance.
And I am not sure that, in spite of
Rebecca's simplicity and activity, and gentleness and untiring good
humour, the shrewd old London lady, upon whom these treasures of
friendship were lavished, had not a lurking suspicion all the while
of her affectionate nurse and friend. It must have often crossed Miss
Crawley's mind that nobody does anything for nothing. If she measured
her own feeling towards the world, she must have been pretty well
able to gauge those of the world towards herself; and perhaps she
reflected that it is the ordinary lot of people to have no friends if
they themselves care for nobody.
Well, meanwhile Becky was the greatest
comfort and convenience to her, and she gave her a couple of new
gowns, and an old necklace and shawl, and showed her friendship by
abusing all her intimate acquaintances to her new confidante (than
which there can't be a more touching proof of regard), and meditated
vaguely some great future benefit—to marry her perhaps to Clump,
the apothecary, or to settle her in some advantageous way of life; or
at any rate, to send her back to Queen's Crawley when she had done
with her, and the full London season had begun.
When Miss Crawley was convalescent and
descended to the drawing- room, Becky sang to her, and otherwise
amused her; when she was well enough to drive out, Becky accompanied
her. And amongst the drives which they took, whither, of all places
in the world, did Miss Crawley's admirable good-nature and friendship
actually induce her to penetrate, but to Russell Square, Bloomsbury,
and the house of John Sedley, Esquire.
Ere that event, many notes had passed,
as may be imagined, between the two dear friends. During the months
of Rebecca's stay in Hampshire, the eternal friendship had (must it
be owned?) suffered considerable diminution, and grown so decrepit
and feeble with old age as to threaten demise altogether. The fact
is, both girls had their own real affairs to think of: Rebecca her
advance with her employers—Amelia her own absorbing topic. When the
two girls met, and flew into each other's arms with that impetuosity
which distinguishes the behaviour of young ladies towards each other,
Rebecca performed her part of the embrace with the most perfect
briskness and energy. Poor little Amelia blushed as she kissed her
friend, and thought she had been guilty of something very like
coldness towards her.
Their first interview was but a very
short one. Amelia was just ready to go out for a walk. Miss Crawley
was waiting in her carriage below, her people wondering at the
locality in which they found themselves, and gazing upon honest
Sambo, the black footman of Bloomsbury, as one of the queer natives
of the place. But when Amelia came down with her kind smiling looks
(Rebecca must introduce her to her friend, Miss Crawley was longing
to see her, and was too ill to leave her carriage)—when, I say,
Amelia came down, the Park Lane shoulder-knot aristocracy wondered
more and more that such a thing could come out of Bloomsbury; and
Miss Crawley was fairly captivated by the sweet blushing face of the
young lady who came forward so timidly and so gracefully to pay her
respects to the protector of her friend.
"What a complexion, my dear! What
a sweet voice!" Miss Crawley said, as they drove away westward
after the little interview. "My dear Sharp, your young friend is
charming. Send for her to Park Lane, do you hear?" Miss Crawley
had a good taste. She liked natural manners—a little timidity only
set them off. She liked pretty faces near her; as she liked pretty
pictures and nice china. She talked of Amelia with rapture half a
dozen times that day. She mentioned her to Rawdon Crawley, who came
dutifully to partake of his aunt's chicken.
Of course, on this Rebecca instantly
stated that Amelia was engaged to be married—to a Lieutenant
Osborne—a very old flame.
"Is he a man in a line-regiment?"
Captain Crawley asked, remembering after an effort, as became a
guardsman, the number of the regiment, the —th.
Rebecca thought that was the regiment.
"The Captain's name," she said, "was Captain Dobbin."
"A lanky gawky fellow," said
Crawley, "tumbles over everybody. I know him; and Osborne's a
goodish-looking fellow, with large black whiskers?"
"Enormous," Miss Rebecca
Sharp said, "and enormously proud of them, I assure you."
Captain Rawdon Crawley burst into a
horse-laugh by way of reply; and being pressed by the ladies to
explain, did so when the explosion of hilarity was over. "He
fancies he can play at billiards," said he. "I won two
hundred of him at the Cocoa-Tree. HE play, the young flat! He'd have
played for anything that day, but his friend Captain Dobbin carried
him off, hang him!"
"Rawdon, Rawdon, don't be so
wicked," Miss Crawley remarked, highly pleased.
"Why, ma'am, of all the young
fellows I've seen out of the line, I think this fellow's the
greenest. Tarquin and Deuceace get what money they like out of him.
He'd go to the deuce to be seen with a lord. He pays their dinners at
Greenwich, and they invite the company."
"And very pretty company too, I
dare say."
"Quite right, Miss Sharp. Right,
as usual, Miss Sharp. Uncommon pretty company—haw, haw!" and
the Captain laughed more and more, thinking he had made a good joke.
"Rawdon, don't be naughty!"
his aunt exclaimed.
"Well, his father's a City
man—immensely rich, they say. Hang those City fellows, they must
bleed; and I've not done with him yet, I can tell you. Haw, haw!"
"Fie, Captain Crawley; I shall
warn Amelia. A gambling husband!"
"Horrid, ain't he, hey?" the
Captain said with great solemnity; and then added, a sudden thought
having struck him: "Gad, I say, ma'am, we'll have him here."
"Is he a presentable sort of a
person?" the aunt inquired.
"Presentable?—oh, very well. You
wouldn't see any difference," Captain Crawley answered. "Do
let's have him, when you begin to see a few people; and his
whatdyecallem—his inamorato—eh, Miss Sharp; that's what you call
it—comes. Gad, I'll write him a note, and have him; and I'll try if
he can play piquet as well as billiards. Where does he live, Miss
Sharp?"
Miss Sharp told Crawley the
Lieutenant's town address; and a few days after this conversation,
Lieutenant Osborne received a letter, in Captain Rawdon's schoolboy
hand, and enclosing a note of invitation from Miss Crawley.
Rebecca despatched also an invitation
to her darling Amelia, who, you may be sure, was ready enough to
accept it when she heard that George was to be of the party. It was
arranged that Amelia was to spend the morning with the ladies of Park
Lane, where all were very kind to her. Rebecca patronised her with
calm superiority: she was so much the cleverer of the two, and her
friend so gentle and unassuming, that she always yielded when anybody
chose to command, and so took Rebecca's orders with perfect meekness
and good humour. Miss Crawley's graciousness was also remarkable. She
continued her raptures about little Amelia, talked about her before
her face as if she were a doll, or a servant, or a picture, and
admired her with the most benevolent wonder possible. I admire that
admiration which the genteel world sometimes extends to the
commonalty. There is no more agreeable object in life than to see
Mayfair folks condescending. Miss Crawley's prodigious benevolence
rather fatigued poor little Amelia, and I am not sure that of the
three ladies in Park Lane she did not find honest Miss Briggs the
most agreeable. She sympathised with Briggs as with all neglected or
gentle people: she wasn't what you call a woman of spirit.
George came to dinner—a repast en
garcon with Captain Crawley.
The great family coach of the Osbornes
transported him to Park Lane from Russell Square; where the young
ladies, who were not themselves invited, and professed the greatest
indifference at that slight, nevertheless looked at Sir Pitt
Crawley's name in the baronetage; and learned everything which that
work had to teach about the Crawley family and their pedigree, and
the Binkies, their relatives, &c., &c. Rawdon Crawley
received George Osborne with great frankness and graciousness:
praised his play at billiards: asked him when he would have his
revenge: was interested about Osborne's regiment: and would have
proposed piquet to him that very evening, but Miss Crawley absolutely
forbade any gambling in her house; so that the young Lieutenant's
purse was not lightened by his gallant patron, for that day at least.
However, they made an engagement for the next, somewhere: to look at
a horse that Crawley had to sell, and to try him in the Park; and to
dine together, and to pass the evening with some jolly fellows. "That
is, if you're not on duty to that pretty Miss Sedley," Crawley
said, with a knowing wink. "Monstrous nice girl, 'pon my honour,
though, Osborne," he was good enough to add. "Lots of tin,
I suppose, eh?"
Osborne wasn't on duty; he would join
Crawley with pleasure: and the latter, when they met the next day,
praised his new friend's horsemanship—as he might with perfect
honesty—and introduced him to three or four young men of the first
fashion, whose acquaintance immensely elated the simple young
officer.
"How's little Miss Sharp,
by-the-bye?" Osborne inquired of his friend over their wine,
with a dandified air. "Good-natured little girl that. Does she
suit you well at Queen's Crawley? Miss Sedley liked her a good deal
last year."
Captain Crawley looked savagely at the
Lieutenant out of his little blue eyes, and watched him when he went
up to resume his acquaintance with the fair governess. Her conduct
must have relieved Crawley if there was any jealousy in the bosom of
that life-guardsman.
When the young men went upstairs, and
after Osborne's introduction to Miss Crawley, he walked up to Rebecca
with a patronising, easy swagger. He was going to be kind to her and
protect her. He would even shake hands with her, as a friend of
Amelia's; and saying, "Ah, Miss Sharp! how-dy-doo?" held
out his left hand towards her, expecting that she would be quite
confounded at the honour.
Miss Sharp put out her right
forefinger, and gave him a little nod, so cool and killing, that
Rawdon Crawley, watching the operations from the other room, could
hardly restrain his laughter as he saw the Lieutenant's entire
discomfiture; the start he gave, the pause, and the perfect
clumsiness with which he at length condescended to take the finger
which was offered for his embrace.
"She'd beat the devil, by Jove!"
the Captain said, in a rapture; and the Lieutenant, by way of
beginning the conversation, agreeably asked Rebecca how she liked her
new place.
"My place?" said Miss Sharp,
coolly, "how kind of you to remind me of it! It's a tolerably
good place: the wages are pretty good—not so good as Miss Wirt's, I
believe, with your sisters in Russell Square. How are those young
ladies?—not that I ought to ask."
"Why not?" Mr. Osborne said,
amazed.
"Why, they never condescended to
speak to me, or to ask me into their house, whilst I was staying with
Amelia; but we poor governesses, you know, are used to slights of
this sort."
"My dear Miss Sharp!" Osborne
ejaculated.
"At least in some families,"
Rebecca continued. "You can't think what a difference there is
though. We are not so wealthy in Hampshire as you lucky folks of the
City. But then I am in a gentleman's family—good old English stock.
I suppose you know Sir Pitt's father refused a peerage. And you see
how I am treated. I am pretty comfortable. Indeed it is rather a good
place. But how very good of you to inquire!"
Osborne was quite savage. The little
governess patronised him and persiffled him until this young British
Lion felt quite uneasy; nor could he muster sufficient presence of
mind to find a pretext for backing out of this most delectable
conversation.
"I thought you liked the City
families pretty well," he said, haughtily.
"Last year you mean, when I was
fresh from that horrid vulgar school? Of course I did. Doesn't every
girl like to come home for the holidays? And how was I to know any
better? But oh, Mr. Osborne, what a difference eighteen months'
experience makes! eighteen months spent, pardon me for saying so,
with gentlemen. As for dear Amelia, she, I grant you, is a pearl, and
would be charming anywhere. There now, I see you are beginning to be
in a good humour; but oh these queer odd City people! And Mr. Jos—how
is that wonderful Mr. Joseph?"
"It seems to me you didn't dislike
that wonderful Mr. Joseph last year," Osborne said kindly.
"How severe of you! Well, entre
nous, I didn't break my heart about him; yet if he had asked me to do
what you mean by your looks (and very expressive and kind they are,
too), I wouldn't have said no."
Mr. Osborne gave a look as much as to
say, "Indeed, how very obliging!"
"What an honour to have had you
for a brother-in-law, you are thinking? To be sister-in-law to George
Osborne, Esquire, son of John Osborne, Esquire, son of—what was
your grandpapa, Mr. Osborne? Well, don't be angry. You can't help
your pedigree, and I quite agree with you that I would have married
Mr. Joe Sedley; for could a poor penniless girl do better? Now you
know the whole secret. I'm frank and open; considering all things, it
was very kind of you to allude to the circumstance—very kind and
polite. Amelia dear, Mr. Osborne and I were talking about your poor
brother Joseph. How is he?"
Thus was George utterly routed. Not
that Rebecca was in the right; but she had managed most successfully
to put him in the wrong. And he now shamefully fled, feeling, if he
stayed another minute, that he would have been made to look foolish
in the presence of Amelia.
Though Rebecca had had the better of
him, George was above the meanness of talebearing or revenge upon a
lady—only he could not help cleverly confiding to Captain Crawley,
next day, some notions of his regarding Miss Rebecca—that she was a
sharp one, a dangerous one, a desperate flirt, &c.; in all of
which opinions Crawley agreed laughingly, and with every one of which
Miss Rebecca was made acquainted before twenty-four hours were over.
They added to her original regard for Mr. Osborne. Her woman's
instinct had told her that it was George who had interrupted the
success of her first love-passage, and she esteemed him accordingly.
"I only just warn you," he
said to Rawdon Crawley, with a knowing look—he had bought the
horse, and lost some score of guineas after dinner, "I just warn
you—I know women, and counsel you to be on the look-out."
"Thank you, my boy," said
Crawley, with a look of peculiar gratitude. "You're wide awake,
I see." And George went off, thinking Crawley was quite right.
He told Amelia of what he had done, and
how he had counselled Rawdon Crawley—a devilish good,
straightforward fellow—to be on his guard against that little sly,
scheming Rebecca.
"Against whom?" Amelia cried.
"Your friend the governess.—Don't
look so astonished."
"O George, what have you done?"
Amelia said. For her woman's eyes, which Love had made sharp-sighted,
had in one instant discovered a secret which was invisible to Miss
Crawley, to poor virgin Briggs, and above all, to the stupid peepers
of that young whiskered prig, Lieutenant Osborne.
For as Rebecca was shawling her in an
upper apartment, where these two friends had an opportunity for a
little of that secret talking and conspiring which form the delight
of female life, Amelia, coming up to Rebecca, and taking her two
little hands in hers, said, "Rebecca, I see it all."
Rebecca kissed her.
And regarding this delightful secret,
not one syllable more was said by either of the young women. But it
was destined to come out before long.
Some short period after the above
events, and Miss Rebecca Sharp still remaining at her patroness's
house in Park Lane, one more hatchment might have been seen in Great
Gaunt Street, figuring amongst the many which usually ornament that
dismal quarter. It was over Sir Pitt Crawley's house; but it did not
indicate the worthy baronet's demise. It was a feminine hatchment,
and indeed a few years back had served as a funeral compliment to Sir
Pitt's old mother, the late dowager Lady Crawley. Its period of
service over, the hatchment had come down from the front of the
house, and lived in retirement somewhere in the back premises of Sir
Pitt's mansion. It reappeared now for poor Rose Dawson. Sir Pitt was
a widower again. The arms quartered on the shield along with his own
were not, to be sure, poor Rose's. She had no arms. But the cherubs
painted on the scutcheon answered as well for her as for Sir Pitt's
mother, and Resurgam was written under the coat, flanked by the
Crawley Dove and Serpent. Arms and Hatchments, Resurgam.—Here is an
opportunity for moralising!
Mr. Crawley had tended that otherwise
friendless bedside. She went out of the world strengthened by such
words and comfort as he could give her. For many years his was the
only kindness she ever knew; the only friendship that solaced in any
way that feeble, lonely soul. Her heart was dead long before her
body. She had sold it to become Sir Pitt Crawley's wife. Mothers and
daughters are making the same bargain every day in Vanity Fair.
When the demise took place, her husband
was in London attending to some of his innumerable schemes, and busy
with his endless lawyers. He had found time, nevertheless, to call
often in Park Lane, and to despatch many notes to Rebecca, entreating
her, enjoining her, commanding her to return to her young pupils in
the country, who were now utterly without companionship during their
mother's illness. But Miss Crawley would not hear of her departure;
for though there was no lady of fashion in London who would desert
her friends more complacently as soon as she was tired of their
society, and though few tired of them sooner, yet as long as her
engoument lasted her attachment was prodigious, and she clung still
with the greatest energy to Rebecca.
The news of Lady Crawley's death
provoked no more grief or comment than might have been expected in
Miss Crawley's family circle. "I suppose I must put off my party
for the 3rd," Miss Crawley said; and added, after a pause, "I
hope my brother will have the decency not to marry again." "What
a confounded rage Pitt will be in if he does," Rawdon remarked,
with his usual regard for his elder brother. Rebecca said nothing.
She seemed by far the gravest and most impressed of the family. She
left the room before Rawdon went away that day; but they met by
chance below, as he was going away after taking leave, and had a
parley together.
On the morrow, as Rebecca was gazing
from the window, she startled Miss Crawley, who was placidly occupied
with a French novel, by crying out in an alarmed tone, "Here's
Sir Pitt, Ma'am!" and the Baronet's knock followed this
announcement.
"My dear, I can't see him. I won't
see him. Tell Bowls not at home, or go downstairs and say I'm too ill
to receive any one. My nerves really won't bear my brother at this
moment," cried out Miss Crawley, and resumed the novel.
"She's too ill to see you, sir,"
Rebecca said, tripping down to Sir Pitt, who was preparing to ascend.
"So much the better," Sir
Pitt answered. "I want to see YOU, Miss Becky. Come along a me
into the parlour," and they entered that apartment together.
"I wawnt you back at Queen's
Crawley, Miss," the baronet said, fixing his eyes upon her, and
taking off his black gloves and his hat with its great crape
hat-band. His eyes had such a strange look, and fixed upon her so
steadfastly, that Rebecca Sharp began almost to tremble.
"I hope to come soon," she
said in a low voice, "as soon as Miss Crawley is better—and
return to—to the dear children."
"You've said so these three
months, Becky," replied Sir Pitt, "and still you go hanging
on to my sister, who'll fling you off like an old shoe, when she's
wore you out. I tell you I want you. I'm going back to the Vuneral.
Will you come back? Yes or no?"
"I daren't—I don't think—it
would be right—to be alone—with you, sir," Becky said,
seemingly in great agitation.
"I say agin, I want you," Sir
Pitt said, thumping the table. "I can't git on without you. I
didn't see what it was till you went away. The house all goes wrong.
It's not the same place. All my accounts has got muddled agin. You
MUST come back. Do come back. Dear Becky, do come."
"Come—as what, sir?"
Rebecca gasped out.
"Come as Lady Crawley, if you
like," the Baronet said, grasping his crape hat. "There!
will that zatusfy you? Come back and be my wife. Your vit vor't.
Birth be hanged. You're as good a lady as ever I see. You've got more
brains in your little vinger than any baronet's wife in the county.
Will you come? Yes or no?"
"Oh, Sir Pitt!" Rebecca said,
very much moved.
"Say yes, Becky," Sir Pitt
continued. "I'm an old man, but a good'n. I'm good for twenty
years. I'll make you happy, zee if I don't. You shall do what you
like; spend what you like; and 'ave it all your own way. I'll make
you a zettlement. I'll do everything reglar. Look year!" and the
old man fell down on his knees and leered at her like a satyr.
Rebecca started back a picture of
consternation. In the course of this history we have never seen her
lose her presence of mind; but she did now, and wept some of the most
genuine tears that ever fell from her eyes.
"Oh, Sir Pitt!" she said.
"Oh, sir—I—I'm married ALREADY."
Chapter XV
*
In Which Rebecca's Husband Appears for
a Short Time
Every reader of a sentimental turn (and
we desire no other) must have been pleased with the tableau with
which the last act of our little drama concluded; for what can be
prettier than an image of Love on his knees before Beauty?
But when Love heard that awful
confession from Beauty that she was married already, he bounced up
from his attitude of humility on the carpet, uttering exclamations
which caused poor little Beauty to be more frightened than she was
when she made her avowal. "Married; you're joking," the
Baronet cried, after the first explosion of rage and wonder. "You're
making vun of me, Becky. Who'd ever go to marry you without a
shilling to your vortune?"
"Married! married!" Rebecca
said, in an agony of tears—her voice choking with emotion, her
handkerchief up to her ready eyes, fainting against the mantelpiece a
figure of woe fit to melt the most obdurate heart. "O Sir Pitt,
dear Sir Pitt, do not think me ungrateful for all your goodness to
me. It is only your generosity that has extorted my secret."
"Generosity be hanged!" Sir
Pitt roared out. "Who is it tu, then, you're married? Where was
it?"
"Let me come back with you to the
country, sir! Let me watch over you as faithfully as ever! Don't,
don't separate me from dear Queen's Crawley!"
"The feller has left you, has he?"
the Baronet said, beginning, as he fancied, to comprehend. "Well,
Becky—come back if you like. You can't eat your cake and have it.
Any ways I made you a vair offer. Coom back as governess—you shall
have it all your own way." She held out one hand. She cried fit
to break her heart; her ringlets fell over her face, and over the
marble mantelpiece where she laid it.
"So the rascal ran off, eh?"
Sir Pitt said, with a hideous attempt at consolation. "Never
mind, Becky, I'LL take care of 'ee."
"Oh, sir! it would be the pride of
my life to go back to Queen's Crawley, and take care of the children,
and of you as formerly, when you said you were pleased with the
services of your little Rebecca. When I think of what you have just
offered me, my heart fills with gratitude indeed it does. I can't be
your wife, sir; let me—let me be your daughter." Saying which,
Rebecca went down on HER knees in a most tragical way, and, taking
Sir Pitt's horny black hand between her own two (which were very
pretty and white, and as soft as satin), looked up in his face with
an expression of exquisite pathos and confidence, when—when the
door opened, and Miss Crawley sailed in.
Mrs. Firkin and Miss Briggs, who
happened by chance to be at the parlour door soon after the Baronet
and Rebecca entered the apartment, had also seen accidentally,
through the keyhole, the old gentleman prostrate before the
governess, and had heard the generous proposal which he made her. It
was scarcely out of his mouth when Mrs. Firkin and Miss Briggs had
streamed up the stairs, had rushed into the drawing-room where Miss
Crawley was reading the French novel, and had given that old lady the
astounding intelligence that Sir Pitt was on his knees, proposing to
Miss Sharp. And if you calculate the time for the above dialogue to
take place—the time for Briggs and Firkin to fly to the
drawing-room—the time for Miss Crawley to be astonished, and to
drop her volume of Pigault le Brun —and the time for her to come
downstairs—you will see how exactly accurate this history is, and
how Miss Crawley must have appeared at the very instant when Rebecca
had assumed the attitude of humility.
"It is the lady on the ground, and
not the gentleman," Miss Crawley said, with a look and voice of
great scorn. "They told me that YOU were on your knees, Sir
Pitt: do kneel once more, and let me see this pretty couple!"
"I have thanked Sir Pitt Crawley,
Ma'am," Rebecca said, rising, "and have told him that—that
I never can become Lady Crawley."
"Refused him!" Miss Crawley
said, more bewildered than ever. Briggs and Firkin at the door opened
the eyes of astonishment and the lips of wonder.
"Yes—refused," Rebecca
continued, with a sad, tearful voice.
"And am I to credit my ears that
you absolutely proposed to her, Sir Pitt?" the old lady asked.
"Ees," said the Baronet, "I
did."
"And she refused you as she says?"
"Ees," Sir Pitt said, his
features on a broad grin.
"It does not seem to break your
heart at any rate," Miss Crawley remarked.
"Nawt a bit," answered Sir
Pitt, with a coolness and good-humour which set Miss Crawley almost
mad with bewilderment. That an old gentleman of station should fall
on his knees to a penniless governess, and burst out laughing because
she refused to marry him— that a penniless governess should refuse
a Baronet with four thousand a year—these were mysteries which Miss
Crawley could never comprehend. It surpassed any complications of
intrigue in her favourite Pigault le Brun.
"I'm glad you think it good sport,
brother," she continued, groping wildly through this amazement.
"Vamous," said Sir Pitt.
"Who'd ha' thought it! what a sly little devil! what a little
fox it waws!" he muttered to himself, chuckling with pleasure.
"Who'd have thought what?"
cries Miss Crawley, stamping with her foot. "Pray, Miss Sharp,
are you waiting for the Prince Regent's divorce, that you don't think
our family good enough for you?"
"My attitude," Rebecca said,
"when you came in, ma'am, did not look as if I despised such an
honour as this good—this noble man has deigned to offer me. Do you
think I have no heart? Have you all loved me, and been so kind to the
poor orphan—deserted—girl, and am I to feel nothing? O my
friends! O my benefactors! may not my love, my life, my duty, try to
repay the confidence you have shown me? Do you grudge me even
gratitude, Miss Crawley? It is too much- -my heart is too full";
and she sank down in a chair so pathetically, that most of the
audience present were perfectly melted with her sadness.
"Whether you marry me or not,
you're a good little girl, Becky, and I'm your vriend, mind,"
said Sir Pitt, and putting on his crape- bound hat, he walked
away—greatly to Rebecca's relief; for it was evident that her
secret was unrevealed to Miss Crawley, and she had the advantage of a
brief reprieve.
Putting her handkerchief to her eyes,
and nodding away honest Briggs, who would have followed her upstairs,
she went up to her apartment; while Briggs and Miss Crawley, in a
high state of excitement, remained to discuss the strange event, and
Firkin, not less moved, dived down into the kitchen regions, and
talked of it with all the male and female company there. And so
impressed was Mrs. Firkin with the news, that she thought proper to
write off by that very night's post, "with her humble duty to
Mrs. Bute Crawley and the family at the Rectory, and Sir Pitt has
been and proposed for to marry Miss Sharp, wherein she has refused
him, to the wonder of all."
The two ladies in the dining-room
(where worthy Miss Briggs was delighted to be admitted once more to
confidential conversation with her patroness) wondered to their
hearts' content at Sir Pitt's offer, and Rebecca's refusal; Briggs
very acutely suggesting that there must have been some obstacle in
the shape of a previous attachment, otherwise no young woman in her
senses would ever have refused so advantageous a proposal.
"You would have accepted it
yourself, wouldn't you, Briggs?" Miss Crawley said, kindly.
"Would it not be a privilege to be
Miss Crawley's sister?" Briggs replied, with meek evasion.
"Well, Becky would have made a
good Lady Crawley, after all," Miss Crawley remarked (who was
mollified by the girl's refusal, and very liberal and generous now
there was no call for her sacrifices). "She has brains in plenty
(much more wit in her little finger than you have, my poor dear
Briggs, in all your head). Her manners are excellent, now I have
formed her. She is a Montmorency, Briggs, and blood is something,
though I despise it for my part; and she would have held her own
amongst those pompous stupid Hampshire people much better than that
unfortunate ironmonger's daughter."
Briggs coincided as usual, and the
"previous attachment" was then discussed in conjectures.
"You poor friendless creatures are always having some foolish
tendre," Miss Crawley said. "You yourself, you know, were
in love with a writing-master (don't cry, Briggs—you're always
crying, and it won't bring him to life again), and I suppose this
unfortunate Becky has been silly and sentimental too—some
apothecary, or house-steward, or painter, or young curate, or
something of that sort."
"Poor thing! poor thing!"
says Briggs (who was thinking of twenty- four years back, and that
hectic young writing-master whose lock of yellow hair, and whose
letters, beautiful in their illegibility, she cherished in her old
desk upstairs). "Poor thing, poor thing!" says Briggs. Once
more she was a fresh-cheeked lass of eighteen; she was at evening
church, and the hectic writing-master and she were quavering out of
the same psalm-book.
"After such conduct on Rebecca's
part," Miss Crawley said enthusiastically, "our family
should do something. Find out who is the objet, Briggs. I'll set him
up in a shop; or order my portrait of him, you know; or speak to my
cousin, the Bishop and I'll doter Becky, and we'll have a wedding,
Briggs, and you shall make the breakfast, and be a bridesmaid."
Briggs declared that it would be
delightful, and vowed that her dear Miss Crawley was always kind and
generous, and went up to Rebecca's bedroom to console her and prattle
about the offer, and the refusal, and the cause thereof; and to hint
at the generous intentions of Miss Crawley, and to find out who was
the gentleman that had the mastery of Miss Sharp's heart.
Rebecca was very kind, very
affectionate and affected—responded to Briggs's offer of tenderness
with grateful fervour—owned there was a secret attachment—a
delicious mystery—what a pity Miss Briggs had not remained half a
minute longer at the keyhole! Rebecca might, perhaps, have told more:
but five minutes after Miss Briggs's arrival in Rebecca's apartment,
Miss Crawley actually made her appearance there—an unheard-of
honour—her impatience had overcome her; she could not wait for the
tardy operations of her ambassadress: so she came in person, and
ordered Briggs out of the room. And expressing her approval of
Rebecca's conduct, she asked particulars of the interview, and the
previous transactions which had brought about the astonishing offer
of Sir Pitt.
Rebecca said she had long had some
notion of the partiality with which Sir Pitt honoured her (for he was
in the habit of making his feelings known in a very frank and
unreserved manner) but, not to mention private reasons with which she
would not for the present trouble Miss Crawley, Sir Pitt's age,
station, and habits were such as to render a marriage quite
impossible; and could a woman with any feeling of self-respect and
any decency listen to proposals at such a moment, when the funeral of
the lover's deceased wife had not actually taken place?
"Nonsense, my dear, you would
never have refused him had there not been some one else in the case,"
Miss Crawley said, coming to her point at once. "Tell me the
private reasons; what are the private reasons? There is some one; who
is it that has touched your heart?"
Rebecca cast down her eyes, and owned
there was. "You have guessed right, dear lady," she said,
with a sweet simple faltering voice. "You wonder at one so poor
and friendless having an attachment, don't you? I have never heard
that poverty was any safeguard against it. I wish it were."
"My poor dear child," cried
Miss Crawley, who was always quite ready to be sentimental, "is
our passion unrequited, then? Are we pining in secret? Tell me all,
and let me console you."
"I wish you could, dear Madam,"
Rebecca said in the same tearful tone. "Indeed, indeed, I need
it." And she laid her head upon Miss Crawley's shoulder and wept
there so naturally that the old lady, surprised into sympathy,
embraced her with an almost maternal kindness, uttered many soothing
protests of regard and affection for her, vowed that she loved her as
a daughter, and would do everything in her power to serve her. "And
now who is it, my dear? Is it that pretty Miss Sedley's brother? You
said something about an affair with him. I'll ask him here, my dear.
And you shall have him: indeed you shall."
"Don't ask me now," Rebecca
said. "You shall know all soon. Indeed you shall. Dear kind Miss
Crawley—dear friend, may I say so?"
"That you may, my child," the
old lady replied, kissing her.
"I can't tell you now,"
sobbed out Rebecca, "I am very miserable. But O! love me
always—promise you will love me always." And in the midst of
mutual tears—for the emotions of the younger woman had awakened the
sympathies of the elder—this promise was solemnly given by Miss
Crawley, who left her little protege, blessing and admiring her as a
dear, artless, tender-hearted, affectionate, incomprehensible
creature.
And now she was left alone to think
over the sudden and wonderful events of the day, and of what had been
and what might have been. What think you were the private feelings of
Miss, no (begging her pardon) of Mrs. Rebecca? If, a few pages back,
the present writer claimed the privilege of peeping into Miss Amelia
Sedley's bedroom, and understanding with the omniscience of the
novelist all the gentle pains and passions which were tossing upon
that innocent pillow, why should he not declare himself to be
Rebecca's confidante too, master of her secrets, and seal-keeper of
that young woman's conscience?
Well, then, in the first place, Rebecca
gave way to some very sincere and touching regrets that a piece of
marvellous good fortune should have been so near her, and she
actually obliged to decline it. In this natural emotion every
properly regulated mind will certainly share. What good mother is
there that would not commiserate a penniless spinster, who might have
been my lady, and have shared four thousand a year? What well-bred
young person is there in all Vanity Fair, who will not feel for a
hard-working, ingenious, meritorious girl, who gets such an
honourable, advantageous, provoking offer, just at the very moment
when it is out of her power to accept it? I am sure our friend
Becky's disappointment deserves and will command every sympathy.
I remember one night being in the Fair
myself, at an evening party. I observed old Miss Toady there also
present, single out for her special attentions and flattery little
Mrs. Briefless, the barrister's wife, who is of a good family
certainly, but, as we all know, is as poor as poor can be.
What, I asked in my own mind, can cause
this obsequiousness on the part of Miss Toady; has Briefless got a
county court, or has his wife had a fortune left her? Miss Toady
explained presently, with that simplicity which distinguishes all her
conduct. "You know," she said, "Mrs Briefless is
granddaughter of Sir John Redhand, who is so ill at Cheltenham that
he can't last six months. Mrs. Briefless's papa succeeds; so you see
she will be a baronet's daughter." And Toady asked Briefless and
his wife to dinner the very next week.
If the mere chance of becoming a
baronet's daughter can procure a lady such homage in the world,
surely, surely we may respect the agonies of a young woman who has
lost the opportunity of becoming a baronet's wife. Who would have
dreamed of Lady Crawley dying so soon? She was one of those sickly
women that might have lasted these ten years—Rebecca thought to
herself, in all the woes of repentance—and I might have been my
lady! I might have led that old man whither I would. I might have
thanked Mrs. Bute for her patronage, and Mr. Pitt for his
insufferable condescension. I would have had the town-house newly
furnished and decorated. I would have had the handsomest carriage in
London, and a box at the opera; and I would have been presented next
season. All this might have been; and now—now all was doubt and
mystery.
But Rebecca was a young lady of too
much resolution and energy of character to permit herself much
useless and unseemly sorrow for the irrevocable past; so, having
devoted only the proper portion of regret to it, she wisely turned
her whole attention towards the future, which was now vastly more
important to her. And she surveyed her position, and its hopes,
doubts, and chances.
In the first place, she was
MARRIED—that was a great fact. Sir Pitt knew it. She was not so
much surprised into the avowal, as induced to make it by a sudden
calculation. It must have come some day: and why not now as at a
later period? He who would have married her himself must at least be
silent with regard to her marriage. How Miss Crawley would bear the
news—was the great question. Misgivings Rebecca had; but she
remembered all Miss Crawley had said; the old lady's avowed contempt
for birth; her daring liberal opinions; her general romantic
propensities; her almost doting attachment to her nephew, and her
repeatedly expressed fondness for Rebecca herself. She is so fond of
him, Rebecca thought, that she will forgive him anything: she is so
used to me that I don't think she could be comfortable without me:
when the eclaircissement comes there will be a scene, and hysterics,
and a great quarrel, and then a great reconciliation. At all events,
what use was there in delaying? the die was thrown, and now or
to-morrow the issue must be the same. And so, resolved that Miss
Crawley should have the news, the young person debated in her mind as
to the best means of conveying it to her; and whether she should face
the storm that must come, or fly and avoid it until its first fury
was blown over. In this state of meditation she wrote the following
letter:
Dearest Friend,
The great crisis which we have debated
about so often is COME. Half of my secret is known, and I have
thought and thought, until I am quite sure that now is the time to
reveal THE WHOLE OF THE MYSTERY. Sir Pitt came to me this morning,
and made—what do you think?—A DECLARATION IN FORM. Think of that!
Poor little me. I might have been Lady Crawley. How pleased Mrs. Bute
would have been: and ma tante if I had taken precedence of her! I
might have been somebody's mamma, instead of—O, I tremble, I
tremble, when I think how soon we must tell all!
Sir Pitt knows I am married, and not
knowing to whom, is not very much displeased as yet. Ma tante is
ACTUALLY ANGRY that I should have refused him. But she is all
kindness and graciousness. She condescends to say I would have made
him a good wife; and vows that she will be a mother to your little
Rebecca. She will be shaken when she first hears the news. But need
we fear anything beyond a momentary anger? I think not: I AM SURE
not. She dotes upon you so (you naughty, good-for-nothing man), that
she would pardon you ANYTHING: and, indeed, I believe, the next place
in her heart is mine: and that she would be miserable without me.
Dearest! something TELLS ME we shall conquer. You shall leave that
odious regiment: quit gaming, racing, and BE A GOOD BOY; and we shall
all live in Park Lane, and ma tante shall leave us all her money.
I shall try and walk to-morrow at 3 in
the usual place. If Miss B. accompanies me, you must come to dinner,
and bring an answer, and put it in the third volume of Porteus's
Sermons. But, at all events, come to your own
R.
To Miss Eliza Styles, At Mr. Barnet's,
Saddler, Knightsbridge.
And I trust there is no reader of this
little story who has not discernment enough to perceive that the Miss
Eliza Styles (an old schoolfellow, Rebecca said, with whom she had
resumed an active correspondence of late, and who used to fetch these
letters from the saddler's), wore brass spurs, and large curling
mustachios, and was indeed no other than Captain Rawdon Crawley.
Chapter XVI
*
The Letter on the Pincushion
How they were married is not of the
slightest consequence to anybody. What is to hinder a Captain who is
a major, and a young lady who is of age, from purchasing a licence,
and uniting themselves at any church in this town? Who needs to be
told, that if a woman has a will she will assuredly find a way?—My
belief is that one day, when Miss Sharp had gone to pass the forenoon
with her dear friend Miss Amelia Sedley in Russell Square, a lady
very like her might have been seen entering a church in the City, in
company with a gentleman with dyed mustachios, who, after a quarter
of an hour's interval, escorted her back to the hackney-coach in
waiting, and that this was a quiet bridal party.
And who on earth, after the daily
experience we have, can question the probability of a gentleman
marrying anybody? How many of the wise and learned have married their
cooks? Did not Lord Eldon himself, the most prudent of men, make a
runaway match? Were not Achilles and Ajax both in love with their
servant maids? And are we to expect a heavy dragoon with strong
desires and small brains, who had never controlled a passion in his
life, to become prudent all of a sudden, and to refuse to pay any
price for an indulgence to which he had a mind? If people only made
prudent marriages, what a stop to population there would be!
It seems to me, for my part, that Mr.
Rawdon's marriage was one of the honestest actions which we shall
have to record in any portion of that gentleman's biography which has
to do with the present history. No one will say it is unmanly to be
captivated by a woman, or, being captivated, to marry her; and the
admiration, the delight, the passion, the wonder, the unbounded
confidence, and frantic adoration with which, by degrees, this big
warrior got to regard the little Rebecca, were feelings which the
ladies at least will pronounce were not altogether discreditable to
him. When she sang, every note thrilled in his dull soul, and tingled
through his huge frame. When she spoke, he brought all the force of
his brains to listen and wonder. If she was jocular, he used to
revolve her jokes in his mind, and explode over them half an hour
afterwards in the street, to the surprise of the groom in the tilbury
by his side, or the comrade riding with him in Rotten Row. Her words
were oracles to him, her smallest actions marked by an infallible
grace and wisdom. "How she sings,—how she paints,"
thought he. "How she rode that kicking mare at Queen's Crawley!"
And he would say to her in confidential moments, "By Jove, Beck,
you're fit to be Commander-in- Chief, or Archbishop of Canterbury, by
Jove." Is his case a rare one? and don't we see every day in the
world many an honest Hercules at the apron-strings of Omphale, and
great whiskered Samsons prostrate in Delilah's lap?
When, then, Becky told him that the
great crisis was near, and the time for action had arrived, Rawdon
expressed himself as ready to act under her orders, as he would be to
charge with his troop at the command of his colonel. There was no
need for him to put his letter into the third volume of Porteus.
Rebecca easily found a means to get rid of Briggs, her companion, and
met her faithful friend in "the usual place" on the next
day. She had thought over matters at night, and communicated to
Rawdon the result of her determinations. He agreed, of course, to
everything; was quite sure that it was all right: that what she
proposed was best; that Miss Crawley would infallibly relent, or
"come round," as he said, after a time. Had Rebecca's
resolutions been entirely different, he would have followed them as
implicitly. "You have head enough for both of us, Beck,"
said he. "You're sure to get us out of the scrape. I never saw
your equal, and I've met with some clippers in my time too." And
with this simple confession of faith, the love-stricken dragoon left
her to execute his part of the project which she had formed for the
pair.
It consisted simply in the hiring of
quiet lodgings at Brompton, or in the neighbourhood of the barracks,
for Captain and Mrs. Crawley. For Rebecca had determined, and very
prudently, we think, to fly. Rawdon was only too happy at her
resolve; he had been entreating her to take this measure any time for
weeks past. He pranced off to engage the lodgings with all the
impetuosity of love. He agreed to pay two guineas a week so readily,
that the landlady regretted she had asked him so little. He ordered
in a piano, and half a nursery- house full of flowers: and a heap of
good things. As for shawls, kid gloves, silk stockings, gold French
watches, bracelets and perfumery, he sent them in with the profusion
of blind love and unbounded credit. And having relieved his mind by
this outpouring of generosity, he went and dined nervously at the
club, waiting until the great moment of his life should come.
The occurrences of the previous day;
the admirable conduct of Rebecca in refusing an offer so advantageous
to her, the secret unhappiness preying upon her, the sweetness and
silence with which she bore her affliction, made Miss Crawley much
more tender than usual. An event of this nature, a marriage, or a
refusal, or a proposal, thrills through a whole household of women,
and sets all their hysterical sympathies at work. As an observer of
human nature, I regularly frequent St. George's, Hanover Square,
during the genteel marriage season; and though I have never seen the
bridegroom's male friends give way to tears, or the beadles and
officiating clergy any way affected, yet it is not at all uncommon to
see women who are not in the least concerned in the operations going
on—old ladies who are long past marrying, stout middle-aged females
with plenty of sons and daughters, let alone pretty young creatures
in pink bonnets, who are on their promotion, and may naturally take
an interest in the ceremony—I say it is quite common to see the
women present piping, sobbing, sniffling; hiding their little faces
in their little useless pocket-handkerchiefs; and heaving, old and
young, with emotion. When my friend, the fashionable John Pimlico,
married the lovely Lady Belgravia Green Parker, the excitement was so
general that even the little snuffy old pew-opener who let me into
the seat was in tears. And wherefore? I inquired of my own soul: she
was not going to be married.
Miss Crawley and Briggs in a word,
after the affair of Sir Pitt, indulged in the utmost luxury of
sentiment, and Rebecca became an object of the most tender interest
to them. In her absence Miss Crawley solaced herself with the most
sentimental of the novels in her library. Little Sharp, with her
secret griefs, was the heroine of the day.
That night Rebecca sang more sweetly
and talked more pleasantly than she had ever been heard to do in Park
Lane. She twined herself round the heart of Miss Crawley. She spoke
lightly and laughingly of Sir Pitt's proposal, ridiculed it as the
foolish fancy of an old man; and her eyes filled with tears, and
Briggs's heart with unutterable pangs of defeat, as she said she
desired no other lot than to remain for ever with her dear
benefactress. "My dear little creature," the old lady said,
"I don't intend to let you stir for years, that you may depend
upon it. As for going back to that odious brother of mine after what
has passed, it is out of the question. Here you stay with me and
Briggs. Briggs wants to go to see her relations very often. Briggs,
you may go when you like. But as for you, my dear, you must stay and
take care of the old woman."
If Rawdon Crawley had been then and
there present, instead of being at the club nervously drinking
claret, the pair might have gone down on their knees before the old
spinster, avowed all, and been forgiven in a twinkling. But that good
chance was denied to the young couple, doubtless in order that this
story might be written, in which numbers of their wonderful
adventures are narrated— adventures which could never have occurred
to them if they had been housed and sheltered under the comfortable
uninteresting forgiveness of Miss Crawley.
Under Mrs. Firkin's orders, in the Park
Lane establishment, was a young woman from Hampshire, whose business
it was, among other duties, to knock at Miss Sharp's door with that
jug of hot water which Firkin would rather have perished than have
presented to the intruder. This girl, bred on the family estate, had
a brother in Captain Crawley's troop, and if the truth were known, I
daresay it would come out that she was aware of certain arrangements,
which have a great deal to do with this history. At any rate she
purchased a yellow shawl, a pair of green boots, and a light blue hat
with a red feather with three guineas which Rebecca gave her, and as
little Sharp was by no means too liberal with her money, no doubt it
was for services rendered that Betty Martin was so bribed.
On the second day after Sir Pitt
Crawley's offer to Miss Sharp, the sun rose as usual, and at the
usual hour Betty Martin, the upstairs maid, knocked at the door of
the governess's bedchamber.
No answer was returned, and she knocked
again. Silence was still uninterrupted; and Betty, with the hot
water, opened the door and entered the chamber.
The little white dimity bed was as
smooth and trim as on the day previous, when Betty's own hands had
helped to make it. Two little trunks were corded in one end of the
room; and on the table before the window—on the pincushion the
great fat pincushion lined with pink inside, and twilled like a
lady's nightcap—lay a letter. It had been reposing there probably
all night.
Betty advanced towards it on tiptoe, as
if she were afraid to awake it—looked at it, and round the room,
with an air of great wonder and satisfaction; took up the letter, and
grinned intensely as she turned it round and over, and finally
carried it into Miss Briggs's room below.
How could Betty tell that the letter
was for Miss Briggs, I should like to know? All the schooling Betty
had had was at Mrs. Bute Crawley's Sunday school, and she could no
more read writing than Hebrew.
"La, Miss Briggs," the girl
exclaimed, "O, Miss, something must have happened—there's
nobody in Miss Sharp's room; the bed ain't been slep in, and she've
run away, and left this letter for you, Miss."
"WHAT!" cries Briggs,
dropping her comb, the thin wisp of faded hair falling over her
shoulders; "an elopement! Miss Sharp a fugitive! What, what is
this?" and she eagerly broke the neat seal, and, as they say,
"devoured the contents" of the letter addressed to her.
Dear Miss Briggs (the refugee wrote),
the kindest heart in the world, as yours is, will pity and sympathise
with me and excuse me. With tears, and prayers, and blessings, I
leave the home where the poor orphan has ever met with kindness and
affection. Claims even superior to those of my benefactress call me
hence. I go to my duty—to my HUSBAND. Yes, I am married. My husband
COMMANDS me to seek the HUMBLE HOME which we call ours. Dearest Miss
Briggs, break the news as your delicate sympathy will know how to do
it—to my dear, my beloved friend and benefactress. Tell her, ere I
went, I shed tears on her dear pillow—that pillow that I have so
often soothed in sickness—that I long AGAIN to watch—Oh, with
what joy shall I return to dear Park Lane! How I tremble for the
answer which is to SEAL MY FATE! When Sir Pitt deigned to offer me
his hand, an honour of which my beloved Miss Crawley said I was
DESERVING (my blessings go with her for judging the poor orphan
worthy to be HER SISTER!) I told Sir Pitt that I was already A WIFE.
Even he forgave me. But my courage failed me, when I should have told
him all—that I could not be his wife, for I WAS HIS DAUGHTER! I am
wedded to the best and most generous of men—Miss Crawley's Rawdon
is MY Rawdon. At his COMMAND I open my lips, and follow him to our
humble home, as I would THROUGH THE WORLD. O, my excellent and kind
friend, intercede with my Rawdon's beloved aunt for him and the poor
girl to whom all HIS NOBLE RACE have shown such UNPARALLELED
AFFECTION. Ask Miss Crawley to receive HER CHILDREN. I can say no
more, but blessings, blessings on all in the dear house I leave,
prays
Your affectionate and GRATEFUL Rebecca
Crawley. Midnight.
Just as Briggs had finished reading
this affecting and interesting document, which reinstated her in her
position as first confidante of Miss Crawley, Mrs. Firkin entered the
room. "Here's Mrs. Bute Crawley just arrived by the mail from
Hampshire, and wants some tea; will you come down and make breakfast,
Miss?"
And to the surprise of Firkin, clasping
her dressing-gown around her, the wisp of hair floating dishevelled
behind her, the little curl-papers still sticking in bunches round
her forehead, Briggs sailed down to Mrs. Bute with the letter in her
hand containing the wonderful news.
"Oh, Mrs. Firkin," gasped
Betty, "sech a business. Miss Sharp have a gone and run away
with the Capting, and they're off to Gretney Green!" We would
devote a chapter to describe the emotions of Mrs. Firkin, did not the
passions of her mistresses occupy our genteeler muse.
When Mrs. Bute Crawley, numbed with
midnight travelling, and warming herself at the newly crackling
parlour fire, heard from Miss Briggs the intelligence of the
clandestine marriage, she declared it was quite providential that she
should have arrived at such a time to assist poor dear Miss Crawley
in supporting the shock—that Rebecca was an artful little hussy of
whom she had always had her suspicions; and that as for Rawdon
Crawley, she never could account for his aunt's infatuation regarding
him, and had long considered him a profligate, lost, and abandoned
being. And this awful conduct, Mrs. Bute said, will have at least
this good effect, it will open poor dear Miss Crawley's eyes to the
real character of this wicked man. Then Mrs. Bute had a comfortable
hot toast and tea; and as there was a vacant room in the house now,
there was no need for her to remain at the Gloster Coffee House where
the Portsmouth mail had set her down, and whence she ordered Mr.
Bowls's aide-de-camp the footman to bring away her trunks.
Miss Crawley, be it known, did not
leave her room until near noon— taking chocolate in bed in the
morning, while Becky Sharp read the Morning Post to her, or otherwise
amusing herself or dawdling. The conspirators below agreed that they
would spare the dear lady's feelings until she appeared in her
drawing-room: meanwhile it was announced to her that Mrs. Bute
Crawley had come up from Hampshire by the mail, was staying at the
Gloster, sent her love to Miss Crawley, and asked for breakfast with
Miss Briggs. The arrival of Mrs. Bute, which would not have caused
any extreme delight at another period, was hailed with pleasure now;
Miss Crawley being pleased at the notion of a gossip with her
sister-in-law regarding the late Lady Crawley, the funeral
arrangements pending, and Sir Pitt's abrupt proposal to Rebecca.
It was not until the old lady was
fairly ensconced in her usual arm- chair in the drawing-room, and the
preliminary embraces and inquiries had taken place between the
ladies, that the conspirators thought it advisable to submit her to
the operation. Who has not admired the artifices and delicate
approaches with which women "prepare" their friends for bad
news? Miss Crawley's two friends made such an apparatus of mystery
before they broke the intelligence to her, that they worked her up to
the necessary degree of doubt and alarm.
"And she refused Sir Pitt, my
dear, dear Miss Crawley, prepare yourself for it," Mrs. Bute
said, "because—because she couldn't help herself."
"Of course there was a reason,"
Miss Crawley answered. "She liked somebody else. I told Briggs
so yesterday."
"LIKES somebody else!" Briggs
gasped. "O my dear friend, she is married already."
"Married already," Mrs. Bute
chimed in; and both sate with clasped hands looking from each other
at their victim.
"Send her to me, the instant she
comes in. The little sly wretch: how dared she not tell me?"
cried out Miss Crawley.
"She won't come in soon. Prepare
yourself, dear friend—she's gone out for a long time—she's—she's
gone altogether."
"Gracious goodness, and who's to
make my chocolate? Send for her and have her back; I desire that she
come back," the old lady said.
"She decamped last night, Ma'am,"
cried Mrs. Bute.
"She left a letter for me,"
Briggs exclaimed. "She's married to—"
"Prepare her, for heaven's sake.
Don't torture her, my dear Miss Briggs."
"She's married to whom?"
cries the spinster in a nervous fury.
"To—to a relation of—"
"She refused Sir Pitt," cried
the victim. "Speak at once. Don't drive me mad."
"O Ma'am—prepare her, Miss
Briggs—she's married to Rawdon Crawley."
"Rawdon married
Rebecca—governess—nobod— Get out of my house, you fool, you
idiot—you stupid old Briggs—how dare you? You're in the plot—you
made him marry, thinking that I'd leave my money from him— you did,
Martha," the poor old lady screamed in hysteric sentences.
"I, Ma'am, ask a member of this
family to marry a drawing-master's daughter?"
"Her mother was a Montmorency,"
cried out the old lady, pulling at the bell with all her might.
"Her mother was an opera girl, and
she has been on the stage or worse herself," said Mrs. Bute.
Miss Crawley gave a final scream, and
fell back in a faint. They were forced to take her back to the room
which she had just quitted. One fit of hysterics succeeded another.
The doctor was sent for— the apothecary arrived. Mrs. Bute took up
the post of nurse by her bedside. "Her relations ought to be
round about her," that amiable woman said.
She had scarcely been carried up to her
room, when a new person arrived to whom it was also necessary to
break the news. This was Sir Pitt. "Where's Becky?" he
said, coming in. "Where's her traps? She's coming with me to
Queen's Crawley."
"Have you not heard the
astonishing intelligence regarding her surreptitious union?"
Briggs asked.
"What's that to me?" Sir Pitt
asked. "I know she's married. That makes no odds. Tell her to
come down at once, and not keep me."
"Are you not aware, sir,"
Miss Briggs asked, "that she has left our roof, to the dismay of
Miss Crawley, who is nearly killed by the intelligence of Captain
Rawdon's union with her?"
When Sir Pitt Crawley heard that
Rebecca was married to his son, he broke out into a fury of language,
which it would do no good to repeat in this place, as indeed it sent
poor Briggs shuddering out of the room; and with her we will shut the
door upon the figure of the frenzied old man, wild with hatred and
insane with baffled desire.
One day after he went to Queen's
Crawley, he burst like a madman into the room she had used when
there—dashed open her boxes with his foot, and flung about her
papers, clothes, and other relics. Miss Horrocks, the butler's
daughter, took some of them. The children dressed themselves and
acted plays in the others. It was but a few days after the poor
mother had gone to her lonely burying- place; and was laid, unwept
and disregarded, in a vault full of strangers.
"Suppose the old lady doesn't come
to," Rawdon said to his little wife, as they sate together in
the snug little Brompton lodgings. She had been trying the new piano
all the morning. The new gloves fitted her to a nicety; the new
shawls became her wonderfully; the new rings glittered on her little
hands, and the new watch ticked at her waist; "suppose she don't
come round, eh, Becky?"
"I'LL make your fortune," she
said; and Delilah patted Samson's cheek.
"You can do anything," he
said, kissing the little hand. "By Jove you can; and we'll drive
down to the Star and Garter, and dine, by Jove."
Chapter XVII
*
How Captain Dobbin Bought a Piano
If there is any exhibition in all
Vanity Fair which Satire and Sentiment can visit arm in arm together;
where you light on the strangest contrasts laughable and tearful:
where you may be gentle and pathetic, or savage and cynical with
perfect propriety: it is at one of those public assemblies, a crowd
of which are advertised every day in the last page of the Times
newspaper, and over which the late Mr. George Robins used to preside
with so much dignity. There are very few London people, as I fancy,
who have not attended at these meetings, and all with a taste for
moralizing must have thought, with a sensation and interest not a
little startling and queer, of the day when their turn shall come
too, and Mr. Hammerdown will sell by the orders of Diogenes'
assignees, or will be instructed by the executors, to offer to public
competition, the library, furniture, plate, wardrobe, and choice
cellar of wines of Epicurus deceased.
Even with the most selfish disposition,
the Vanity Fairian, as he witnesses this sordid part of the obsequies
of a departed friend, can't but feel some sympathies and regret. My
Lord Dives's remains are in the family vault: the statuaries are
cutting an inscription veraciously commemorating his virtues, and the
sorrows of his heir, who is disposing of his goods. What guest at
Dives's table can pass the familiar house without a sigh?—the
familiar house of which the lights used to shine so cheerfully at
seven o'clock, of which the hall-doors opened so readily, of which
the obsequious servants, as you passed up the comfortable stair,
sounded your name from landing to landing, until it reached the
apartment where jolly old Dives welcomed his friends! What a number
of them he had; and what a noble way of entertaining them. How witty
people used to be here who were morose when they got out of the door;
and how courteous and friendly men who slandered and hated each other
everywhere else! He was pompous, but with such a cook what would one
not swallow? he was rather dull, perhaps, but would not such wine
make any conversation pleasant? We must get some of his Burgundy at
any price, the mourners cry at his club. "I got this box at old
Dives's sale," Pincher says, handing it round, "one of
Louis XV's mistresses— pretty thing, is it not?—sweet miniature,"
and they talk of the way in which young Dives is dissipating his
fortune.
How changed the house is, though! The
front is patched over with bills, setting forth the particulars of
the furniture in staring capitals. They have hung a shred of carpet
out of an upstairs window—a half dozen of porters are lounging on
the dirty steps—the hall swarms with dingy guests of oriental
countenance, who thrust printed cards into your hand, and offer to
bid. Old women and amateurs have invaded the upper apartments,
pinching the bed- curtains, poking into the feathers, shampooing the
mattresses, and clapping the wardrobe drawers to and fro.
Enterprising young housekeepers are measuring the looking-glasses and
hangings to see if they will suit the new menage (Snob will brag for
years that he has purchased this or that at Dives's sale), and Mr.
Hammerdown is sitting on the great mahogany dining-tables, in the
dining-room below, waving the ivory hammer, and employing all the
artifices of eloquence, enthusiasm, entreaty, reason, despair;
shouting to his people; satirizing Mr. Davids for his sluggishness;
inspiriting Mr. Moss into action; imploring, commanding, bellowing,
until down comes the hammer like fate, and we pass to the next lot. O
Dives, who would ever have thought, as we sat round the broad table
sparkling with plate and spotless linen, to have seen such a dish at
the head of it as that roaring auctioneer?
It was rather late in the sale. The
excellent drawing-room furniture by the best makers; the rare and
famous wines selected, regardless of cost, and with the well-known
taste of the purchaser; the rich and complete set of family plate had
been sold on the previous days. Certain of the best wines (which all
had a great character among amateurs in the neighbourhood) had been
purchased for his master, who knew them very well, by the butler of
our friend John Osborne, Esquire, of Russell Square. A small portion
of the most useful articles of the plate had been bought by some
young stockbrokers from the City. And now the public being invited to
the purchase of minor objects, it happened that the orator on the
table was expatiating on the merits of a picture, which he sought to
recommend to his audience: it was by no means so select or numerous a
company as had attended the previous days of the auction.
"No. 369," roared Mr.
Hammerdown. "Portrait of a gentleman on an elephant. Who'll bid
for the gentleman on the elephant? Lift up the picture, Blowman, and
let the company examine this lot." A long, pale,
military-looking gentleman, seated demurely at the mahogany table,
could not help grinning as this valuable lot was shown by Mr.
Blowman. "Turn the elephant to the Captain, Blowman. What shall
we say, sir, for the elephant?" but the Captain, blushing in a
very hurried and discomfited manner, turned away his head.
"Shall we say twenty guineas for
this work of art?—fifteen, five, name your own price. The gentleman
without the elephant is worth five pound."
"I wonder it ain't come down with
him," said a professional wag, "he's anyhow a precious big
one"; at which (for the elephant-rider was represented as of a
very stout figure) there was a general giggle in the room.
"Don't be trying to deprecate the
value of the lot, Mr. Moss," Mr. Hammerdown said; "let the
company examine it as a work of art—the attitude of the gallant
animal quite according to natur'; the gentleman in a nankeen jacket,
his gun in his hand, is going to the chase; in the distance a
banyhann tree and a pagody, most likely resemblances of some
interesting spot in our famous Eastern possessions. How much for this
lot? Come, gentlemen, don't keep me here all day."
Some one bid five shillings, at which
the military gentleman looked towards the quarter from which this
splendid offer had come, and there saw another officer with a young
lady on his arm, who both appeared to be highly amused with the
scene, and to whom, finally, this lot was knocked down for half a
guinea. He at the table looked more surprised and discomposed than
ever when he spied this pair, and his head sank into his military
collar, and he turned his back upon them, so as to avoid them
altogether.
Of all the other articles which Mr.
Hammerdown had the honour to offer for public competition that day it
is not our purpose to make mention, save of one only, a little square
piano, which came down from the upper regions of the house (the state
grand piano having been disposed of previously); this the young lady
tried with a rapid and skilful hand (making the officer blush and
start again), and for it, when its turn came, her agent began to bid.
But there was an opposition here. The
Hebrew aide-de-camp in the service of the officer at the table bid
against the Hebrew gentleman employed by the elephant purchasers, and
a brisk battle ensued over this little piano, the combatants being
greatly encouraged by Mr. Hammerdown.
At last, when the competition had been
prolonged for some time, the elephant captain and lady desisted from
the race; and the hammer coming down, the auctioneer said:—"Mr.
Lewis, twenty-five," and Mr. Lewis's chief thus became the
proprietor of the little square piano. Having effected the purchase,
he sate up as if he was greatly relieved, and the unsuccessful
competitors catching a glimpse of him at this moment, the lady said
to her friend,
"Why, Rawdon, it's Captain
Dobbin."
I suppose Becky was discontented with
the new piano her husband had hired for her, or perhaps the
proprietors of that instrument had fetched it away, declining farther
credit, or perhaps she had a particular attachment for the one which
she had just tried to purchase, recollecting it in old days, when she
used to play upon it, in the little sitting-room of our dear Amelia
Sedley.
The sale was at the old house in
Russell Square, where we passed some evenings together at the
beginning of this story. Good old John Sedley was a ruined man. His
name had been proclaimed as a defaulter on the Stock Exchange, and
his bankruptcy and commercial extermination had followed. Mr.
Osborne's butler came to buy some of the famous port wine to transfer
to the cellars over the way. As for one dozen well-manufactured
silver spoons and forks at per oz., and one dozen dessert ditto
ditto, there were three young stockbrokers (Messrs. Dale, Spiggot,
and Dale, of Threadneedle Street, indeed), who, having had dealings
with the old man, and kindnesses from him in days when he was kind to
everybody with whom he dealt, sent this little spar out of the wreck
with their love to good Mrs. Sedley; and with respect to the piano,
as it had been Amelia's, and as she might miss it and want one now,
and as Captain William Dobbin could no more play upon it than he
could dance on the tight rope, it is probable that he did not
purchase the instrument for his own use.
In a word, it arrived that evening at a
wonderful small cottage in a street leading from the Fulham Road—one
of those streets which have the finest romantic names—(this was
called St. Adelaide Villas, Anna-Maria Road West), where the houses
look like baby-houses; where the people, looking out of the
first-floor windows, must infallibly, as you think, sit with their
feet in the parlours; where the shrubs in the little gardens in front
bloom with a perennial display of little children's pinafores, little
red socks, caps, &c. (polyandria polygynia); whence you hear the
sound of jingling spinets and women singing; where little porter pots
hang on the railings sunning themselves; whither of evenings you see
City clerks padding wearily: here it was that Mr. Clapp, the clerk of
Mr. Sedley, had his domicile, and in this asylum the good old
gentleman hid his head with his wife and daughter when the crash
came.
Jos Sedley had acted as a man of his
disposition would, when the announcement of the family misfortune
reached him. He did not come to London, but he wrote to his mother to
draw upon his agents for whatever money was wanted, so that his kind
broken-spirited old parents had no present poverty to fear. This
done, Jos went on at the boarding-house at Cheltenham pretty much as
before. He drove his curricle; he drank his claret; he played his
rubber; he told his Indian stories, and the Irish widow consoled and
flattered him as usual. His present of money, needful as it was, made
little impression on his parents; and I have heard Amelia say that
the first day on which she saw her father lift up his head after the
failure was on the receipt of the packet of forks and spoons with the
young stockbrokers' love, over which he burst out crying like a
child, being greatly more affected than even his wife, to whom the
present was addressed. Edward Dale, the junior of the house, who
purchased the spoons for the firm, was, in fact, very sweet upon
Amelia, and offered for her in spite of all. He married Miss Louisa
Cutts (daughter of Higham and Cutts, the eminent cornfactors) with a
handsome fortune in 1820; and is now living in splendour, and with a
numerous family, at his elegant villa, Muswell Hill. But we must not
let the recollections of this good fellow cause us to diverge from
the principal history.
I hope the reader has much too good an
opinion of Captain and Mrs. Crawley to suppose that they ever would
have dreamed of paying a visit to so remote a district as Bloomsbury,
if they thought the family whom they proposed to honour with a visit
were not merely out of fashion, but out of money, and could be
serviceable to them in no possible manner. Rebecca was entirely
surprised at the sight of the comfortable old house where she had met
with no small kindness, ransacked by brokers and bargainers, and its
quiet family treasures given up to public desecration and plunder. A
month after her flight, she had bethought her of Amelia, and Rawdon,
with a horse- laugh, had expressed a perfect willingness to see young
George Osborne again. "He's a very agreeable acquaintance,
Beck," the wag added. "I'd like to sell him another horse,
Beck. I'd like to play a few more games at billiards with him. He'd
be what I call useful just now, Mrs. C.—ha, ha!" by which sort
of speech it is not to be supposed that Rawdon Crawley had a
deliberate desire to cheat Mr. Osborne at play, but only wished to
take that fair advantage of him which almost every sporting gentleman
in Vanity Fair considers to be his due from his neighbour.
The old aunt was long in "coming-to."
A month had elapsed. Rawdon was denied the door by Mr. Bowls; his
servants could not get a lodgment in the house at Park Lane; his
letters were sent back unopened. Miss Crawley never stirred out—she
was unwell—and Mrs. Bute remained still and never left her. Crawley
and his wife both of them augured evil from the continued presence of
Mrs. Bute.
"Gad, I begin to perceive now why
she was always bringing us together at Queen's Crawley," Rawdon
said.
"What an artful little woman!"
ejaculated Rebecca.
"Well, I don't regret it, if you
don't," the Captain cried, still in an amorous rapture with his
wife, who rewarded him with a kiss by way of reply, and was indeed
not a little gratified by the generous confidence of her husband.
"If he had but a little more
brains," she thought to herself, "I might make something of
him"; but she never let him perceive the opinion she had of him;
listened with indefatigable complacency to his stories of the stable
and the mess; laughed at all his jokes; felt the greatest interest in
Jack Spatterdash, whose cab-horse had come down, and Bob Martingale,
who had been taken up in a gambling- house, and Tom Cinqbars, who was
going to ride the steeplechase. When he came home she was alert and
happy: when he went out she pressed him to go: when he stayed at
home, she played and sang for him, made him good drinks,
superintended his dinner, warmed his slippers, and steeped his soul
in comfort. The best of women (I have heard my grandmother say) are
hypocrites. We don't know how much they hide from us: how watchful
they are when they seem most artless and confidential: how often
those frank smiles which they wear so easily, are traps to cajole or
elude or disarm—I don't mean in your mere coquettes, but your
domestic models, and paragons of female virtue. Who has not seen a
woman hide the dulness of a stupid husband, or coax the fury of a
savage one? We accept this amiable slavishness, and praise a woman
for it: we call this pretty treachery truth. A good housewife is of
necessity a humbug; and Cornelia's husband was hoodwinked, as
Potiphar was—only in a different way.
By these attentions, that veteran rake,
Rawdon Crawley, found himself converted into a very happy and
submissive married man. His former haunts knew him not. They asked
about him once or twice at his clubs, but did not miss him much: in
those booths of Vanity Fair people seldom do miss each other. His
secluded wife ever smiling and cheerful, his little comfortable
lodgings, snug meals, and homely evenings, had all the charms of
novelty and secrecy. The marriage was not yet declared to the world,
or published in the Morning Post. All his creditors would have come
rushing on him in a body, had they known that he was united to a
woman without fortune. "My relations won't cry fie upon me,"
Becky said, with rather a bitter laugh; and she was quite contented
to wait until the old aunt should be reconciled, before she claimed
her place in society. So she lived at Brompton, and meanwhile saw no
one, or only those few of her husband's male companions who were
admitted into her little dining-room. These were all charmed with
her. The little dinners, the laughing and chatting, the music
afterwards, delighted all who participated in these enjoyments. Major
Martingale never thought about asking to see the marriage licence,
Captain Cinqbars was perfectly enchanted with her skill in making
punch. And young Lieutenant Spatterdash (who was fond of piquet, and
whom Crawley would often invite) was evidently and quickly smitten by
Mrs. Crawley; but her own circumspection and modesty never forsook
her for a moment, and Crawley's reputation as a fire-eating and
jealous warrior was a further and complete defence to his little
wife.
There are gentlemen of very good blood
and fashion in this city, who never have entered a lady's
drawing-room; so that though Rawdon Crawley's marriage might be
talked about in his county, where, of course, Mrs. Bute had spread
the news, in London it was doubted, or not heeded, or not talked
about at all. He lived comfortably on credit. He had a large capital
of debts, which laid out judiciously, will carry a man along for many
years, and on which certain men about town contrive to live a hundred
times better than even men with ready money can do. Indeed who is
there that walks London streets, but can point out a half-dozen of
men riding by him splendidly, while he is on foot, courted by
fashion, bowed into their carriages by tradesmen, denying themselves
nothing, and living on who knows what? We see Jack Thriftless
prancing in the park, or darting in his brougham down Pall Mall: we
eat his dinners served on his miraculous plate. "How did this
begin," we say, "or where will it end?" "My dear
fellow," I heard Jack once say, "I owe money in every
capital in Europe." The end must come some day, but in the
meantime Jack thrives as much as ever; people are glad enough to
shake him by the hand, ignore the little dark stories that are
whispered every now and then against him, and pronounce him a good-
natured, jovial, reckless fellow.
Truth obliges us to confess that
Rebecca had married a gentleman of this order. Everything was
plentiful in his house but ready money, of which their menage pretty
early felt the want; and reading the Gazette one day, and coming upon
the announcement of "Lieutenant G. Osborne to be Captain by
purchase, vice Smith, who exchanges," Rawdon uttered that
sentiment regarding Amelia's lover, which ended in the visit to
Russell Square.
When Rawdon and his wife wished to
communicate with Captain Dobbin at the sale, and to know particulars
of the catastrophe which had befallen Rebecca's old acquaintances,
the Captain had vanished; and such information as they got was from a
stray porter or broker at the auction.
"Look at them with their hooked
beaks," Becky said, getting into the buggy, her picture under
her arm, in great glee. "They're like vultures after a battle."
"Don't know. Never was in action,
my dear. Ask Martingale; he was in Spain, aide-de-camp to General
Blazes."
"He was a very kind old man, Mr.
Sedley," Rebecca said; "I'm really sorry he's gone wrong."
"O stockbrokers—bankrupts—used
to it, you know," Rawdon replied, cutting a fly off the horse's
ear.
"I wish we could have afforded
some of the plate, Rawdon," the wife continued sentimentally.
"Five-and-twenty guineas was monstrously dear for that little
piano. We chose it at Broadwood's for Amelia, when she came from
school. It only cost five-and-thirty then."
"What-d'-ye-call'em—'Osborne,'
will cry off now, I suppose, since the family is smashed. How cut up
your pretty little friend will be; hey, Becky?"
"I daresay she'll recover it,"
Becky said with a smile—and they drove on and talked about
something else.
Chapter XVIII
*
Who Played on the Piano Captain Dobbin
Bought
Our surprised story now finds itself
for a moment among very famous events and personages, and hanging on
to the skirts of history. When the eagles of Napoleon Bonaparte, the
Corsican upstart, were flying from Provence, where they had perched
after a brief sojourn in Elba, and from steeple to steeple until they
reached the towers of Notre Dame, I wonder whether the Imperial birds
had any eye for a little corner of the parish of Bloomsbury, London,
which you might have thought so quiet, that even the whirring and
flapping of those mighty wings would pass unobserved there?
"Napoleon has landed at Cannes."
Such news might create a panic at Vienna, and cause Russia to drop
his cards, and take Prussia into a corner, and Talleyrand and
Metternich to wag their heads together, while Prince Hardenberg, and
even the present Marquis of Londonderry, were puzzled; but how was
this intelligence to affect a young lady in Russell Square, before
whose door the watchman sang the hours when she was asleep: who, if
she strolled in the square, was guarded there by the railings and the
beadle: who, if she walked ever so short a distance to buy a ribbon
in Southampton Row, was followed by Black Sambo with an enormous
cane: who was always cared for, dressed, put to bed, and watched over
by ever so many guardian angels, with and without wages? Bon Dieu, I
say, is it not hard that the fateful rush of the great Imperial
struggle can't take place without affecting a poor little harmless
girl of eighteen, who is occupied in billing and cooing, or working
muslin collars in Russell Square? You too, kindly, homely flower!—is
the great roaring war tempest coming to sweep you down, here,
although cowering under the shelter of Holborn? Yes; Napoleon is
flinging his last stake, and poor little Emmy Sedley's happiness
forms, somehow, part of it.
In the first place, her father's
fortune was swept down with that fatal news. All his speculations had
of late gone wrong with the luckless old gentleman. Ventures had
failed; merchants had broken; funds had risen when he calculated they
would fall. What need to particularize? If success is rare and slow,
everybody knows how quick and easy ruin is. Old Sedley had kept his
own sad counsel. Everything seemed to go on as usual in the quiet,
opulent house; the good-natured mistress pursuing, quite
unsuspiciously, her bustling idleness, and daily easy avocations; the
daughter absorbed still in one selfish, tender thought, and quite
regardless of all the world besides, when that final crash came,
under which the worthy family fell.
One night Mrs. Sedley was writing cards
for a party; the Osbornes had given one, and she must not be
behindhand; John Sedley, who had come home very late from the City,
sate silent at the chimney side, while his wife was prattling to him;
Emmy had gone up to her room ailing and low-spirited. "She's not
happy," the mother went on. "George Osborne neglects her.
I've no patience with the airs of those people. The girls have not
been in the house these three weeks; and George has been twice in
town without coming. Edward Dale saw him at the Opera. Edward would
marry her I'm sure: and there's Captain Dobbin who, I think,
would—only I hate all army men. Such a dandy as George has become.
With his military airs, indeed! We must show some folks that we're as
good as they. Only give Edward Dale any encouragement, and you'll
see. We must have a party, Mr. S. Why don't you speak, John? Shall I
say Tuesday fortnight? Why don't you answer? Good God, John, what has
happened?"
John Sedley sprang up out of his chair
to meet his wife, who ran to him. He seized her in his arms, and said
with a hasty voice, "We're ruined, Mary. We've got the world to
begin over again, dear. It's best that you should know all, and at
once." As he spoke, he trembled in every limb, and almost fell.
He thought the news would have overpowered his wife—his wife, to
whom he had never said a hard word. But it was he that was the most
moved, sudden as the shock was to her. When he sank back into his
seat, it was the wife that took the office of consoler. She took his
trembling hand, and kissed it, and put it round her neck: she called
him her John—her dear John—her old man—her kind old man; she
poured out a hundred words of incoherent love and tenderness; her
faithful voice and simple caresses wrought this sad heart up to an
inexpressible delight and anguish, and cheered and solaced his
over-burdened soul.
Only once in the course of the long
night as they sate together, and poor Sedley opened his pent-up soul,
and told the story of his losses and embarrassments—the treason of
some of his oldest friends, the manly kindness of some, from whom he
never could have expected it—in a general confession—only once
did the faithful wife give way to emotion.
"My God, my God, it will break
Emmy's heart," she said.
The father had forgotten the poor girl.
She was lying, awake and unhappy, overhead. In the midst of friends,
home, and kind parents, she was alone. To how many people can any one
tell all? Who will be open where there is no sympathy, or has call to
speak to those who never can understand? Our gentle Amelia was thus
solitary. She had no confidante, so to speak, ever since she had
anything to confide. She could not tell the old mother her doubts and
cares; the would-be sisters seemed every day more strange to her. And
she had misgivings and fears which she dared not acknowledge to
herself, though she was always secretly brooding over them.
Her heart tried to persist in asserting
that George Osborne was worthy and faithful to her, though she knew
otherwise. How many a thing had she said, and got no echo from him.
How many suspicions of selfishness and indifference had she to
encounter and obstinately overcome. To whom could the poor little
martyr tell these daily struggles and tortures? Her hero himself only
half understood her. She did not dare to own that the man she loved
was her inferior; or to feel that she had given her heart away too
soon. Given once, the pure bashful maiden was too modest, too tender,
too trustful, too weak, too much woman to recall it. We are Turks
with the affections of our women; and have made them subscribe to our
doctrine too. We let their bodies go abroad liberally enough, with
smiles and ringlets and pink bonnets to disguise them instead of
veils and yakmaks. But their souls must be seen by only one man, and
they obey not unwillingly, and consent to remain at home as our
slaves— ministering to us and doing drudgery for us.
So imprisoned and tortured was this
gentle little heart, when in the month of March, Anno Domini 1815,
Napoleon landed at Cannes, and Louis XVIII fled, and all Europe was
in alarm, and the funds fell, and old John Sedley was ruined.
We are not going to follow the worthy
old stockbroker through those last pangs and agonies of ruin through
which he passed before his commercial demise befell. They declared
him at the Stock Exchange; he was absent from his house of business:
his bills were protested: his act of bankruptcy formal. The house and
furniture of Russell Square were seized and sold up, and he and his
family were thrust away, as we have seen, to hide their heads where
they might.
John Sedley had not the heart to review
the domestic establishment who have appeared now and anon in our
pages and of whom he was now forced by poverty to take leave. The
wages of those worthy people were discharged with that punctuality
which men frequently show who only owe in great sums—they were
sorry to leave good places—but they did not break their hearts at
parting from their adored master and mistress. Amelia's maid was
profuse in condolences, but went off quite resigned to better herself
in a genteeler quarter of the town. Black Sambo, with the infatuation
of his profession, determined on setting up a public-house. Honest
old Mrs. Blenkinsop indeed, who had seen the birth of Jos and Amelia,
and the wooing of John Sedley and his wife, was for staying by them
without wages, having amassed a considerable sum in their service:
and she accompanied the fallen people into their new and humble place
of refuge, where she tended them and grumbled against them for a
while.
Of all Sedley's opponents in his
debates with his creditors which now ensued, and harassed the
feelings of the humiliated old gentleman so severely, that in six
weeks he oldened more than he had done for fifteen years before—the
most determined and obstinate seemed to be John Osborne, his old
friend and neighbour—John Osborne, whom he had set up in life—who
was under a hundred obligations to him—and whose son was to marry
Sedley's daughter. Any one of these circumstances would account for
the bitterness of Osborne's opposition.
When one man has been under very
remarkable obligations to another, with whom he subsequently
quarrels, a common sense of decency, as it were, makes of the former
a much severer enemy than a mere stranger would be. To account for
your own hard-heartedness and ingratitude in such a case, you are
bound to prove the other party's crime. It is not that you are
selfish, brutal, and angry at the failure of a speculation—no,
no—it is that your partner has led you into it by the basest
treachery and with the most sinister motives. From a mere sense of
consistency, a persecutor is bound to show that the fallen man is a
villain—otherwise he, the persecutor, is a wretch himself.
And as a general rule, which may make
all creditors who are inclined to be severe pretty comfortable in
their minds, no men embarrassed are altogether honest, very likely.
They conceal something; they exaggerate chances of good luck; hide
away the real state of affairs; say that things are flourishing when
they are hopeless, keep a smiling face (a dreary smile it is) upon
the verge of bankruptcy—are ready to lay hold of any pretext for
delay or of any money, so as to stave off the inevitable ruin a few
days longer. "Down with such dishonesty," says the creditor
in triumph, and reviles his sinking enemy. "You fool, why do you
catch at a straw?" calm good sense says to the man that is
drowning. "You villain, why do you shrink from plunging into the
irretrievable Gazette?" says prosperity to the poor devil
battling in that black gulf. Who has not remarked the readiness with
which the closest of friends and honestest of men suspect and accuse
each other of cheating when they fall out on money matters? Everybody
does it. Everybody is right, I suppose, and the world is a rogue.
Then Osborne had the intolerable sense
of former benefits to goad and irritate him: these are always a cause
of hostility aggravated. Finally, he had to break off the match
between Sedley's daughter and his son; and as it had gone very far
indeed, and as the poor girl's happiness and perhaps character were
compromised, it was necessary to show the strongest reasons for the
rupture, and for John Osborne to prove John Sedley to be a very bad
character indeed.
At the meetings of creditors, then, he
comported himself with a savageness and scorn towards Sedley, which
almost succeeded in breaking the heart of that ruined bankrupt man.
On George's intercourse with Amelia he put an instant veto—menacing
the youth with maledictions if he broke his commands, and vilipending
the poor innocent girl as the basest and most artful of vixens. One
of the great conditions of anger and hatred is, that you must tell
and believe lies against the hated object, in order, as we said, to
be consistent.
When the great crash came—the
announcement of ruin, and the departure from Russell Square, and the
declaration that all was over between her and George—all over
between her and love, her and happiness, her and faith in the world—a
brutal letter from John Osborne told her in a few curt lines that her
father's conduct had been of such a nature that all engagements
between the families were at an end—when the final award came, it
did not shock her so much as her parents, as her mother rather
expected (for John Sedley himself was entirely prostrate in the ruins
of his own affairs and shattered honour). Amelia took the news very
palely and calmly. It was only the confirmation of the dark presages
which had long gone before. It was the mere reading of the
sentence—of the crime she had long ago been guilty—the crime of
loving wrongly, too violently, against reason. She told no more of
her thoughts now than she had before. She seemed scarcely more
unhappy now when convinced all hope was over, than before when she
felt but dared not confess that it was gone. So she changed from the
large house to the small one without any mark or difference; remained
in her little room for the most part; pined silently; and died away
day by day. I do not mean to say that all females are so. My dear
Miss Bullock, I do not think your heart would break in this way. You
are a strong-minded young woman with proper principles. I do not
venture to say that mine would; it has suffered, and, it must be
confessed, survived. But there are some souls thus gently
constituted, thus frail, and delicate, and tender.
Whenever old John Sedley thought of the
affair between George and Amelia, or alluded to it, it was with
bitterness almost as great as Mr. Osborne himself had shown. He
cursed Osborne and his family as heartless, wicked, and ungrateful.
No power on earth, he swore, would induce him to marry his daughter
to the son of such a villain, and he ordered Emmy to banish George
from her mind, and to return all the presents and letters which she
had ever had from him.
She promised acquiescence, and tried to
obey. She put up the two or three trinkets: and, as for the letters,
she drew them out of the place where she kept them; and read them
over—as if she did not know them by heart already: but she could
not part with them. That effort was too much for her; she placed them
back in her bosom again—as you have seen a woman nurse a child that
is dead. Young Amelia felt that she would die or lose her senses
outright, if torn away from this last consolation. How she used to
blush and lighten up when those letters came! How she used to trip
away with a beating heart, so that she might read unseen! If they
were cold, yet how perversely this fond little soul interpreted them
into warmth. If they were short or selfish, what excuses she found
for the writer!
It was over these few worthless papers
that she brooded and brooded. She lived in her past life—every
letter seemed to recall some circumstance of it. How well she
remembered them all! His looks and tones, his dress, what he said and
how—these relics and remembrances of dead affection were all that
were left her in the world. And the business of her life, was—to
watch the corpse of Love.
To death she looked with inexpressible
longing. Then, she thought, I shall always be able to follow him. I
am not praising her conduct or setting her up as a model for Miss
Bullock to imitate. Miss B. knows how to regulate her feelings better
than this poor little creature. Miss B. would never have committed
herself as that imprudent Amelia had done; pledged her love
irretrievably; confessed her heart away, and got back nothing—only
a brittle promise which was snapt and worthless in a moment. A long
engagement is a partnership which one party is free to keep or to
break, but which involves all the capital of the other.
Be cautious then, young ladies; be wary
how you engage. Be shy of loving frankly; never tell all you feel, or
(a better way still), feel very little. See the consequences of being
prematurely honest and confiding, and mistrust yourselves and
everybody. Get yourselves married as they do in France, where the
lawyers are the bridesmaids and confidantes. At any rate, never have
any feelings which may make you uncomfortable, or make any promises
which you cannot at any required moment command and withdraw. That is
the way to get on, and be respected, and have a virtuous character in
Vanity Fair.
If Amelia could have heard the comments
regarding her which were made in the circle from which her father's
ruin had just driven her, she would have seen what her own crimes
were, and how entirely her character was jeopardised. Such criminal
imprudence Mrs. Smith never knew of; such horrid familiarities Mrs.
Brown had always condemned, and the end might be a warning to HER
daughters. "Captain Osborne, of course, could not marry a
bankrupt's daughter," the Misses Dobbin said. "It was quite
enough to have been swindled by the father. As for that little
Amelia, her folly had really passed all—"
"All what?" Captain Dobbin
roared out. "Haven't they been engaged ever since they were
children? Wasn't it as good as a marriage? Dare any soul on earth
breathe a word against the sweetest, the purest, the tenderest, the
most angelical of young women?"
"La, William, don't be so
highty-tighty with US. We're not men. We can't fight you," Miss
Jane said. "We've said nothing against Miss Sedley: but that her
conduct throughout was MOST IMPRUDENT, not to call it by any worse
name; and that her parents are people who certainly merit their
misfortunes."
"Hadn't you better, now that Miss
Sedley is free, propose for her yourself, William?" Miss Ann
asked sarcastically. "It would be a most eligible family
connection. He! he!"
"I marry her!" Dobbin said,
blushing very much, and talking quick. "If you are so ready,
young ladies, to chop and change, do you suppose that she is? Laugh
and sneer at that angel. She can't hear it; and she's miserable and
unfortunate, and deserves to be laughed at. Go on joking, Ann. You're
the wit of the family, and the others like to hear it."
"I must tell you again we're not
in a barrack, William," Miss Ann remarked.
"In a barrack, by Jove—I wish
anybody in a barrack would say what you do," cried out this
uproused British lion. "I should like to hear a man breathe a
word against her, by Jupiter. But men don't talk in this way, Ann:
it's only women, who get together and hiss, and shriek, and cackle.
There, get away—don't begin to cry. I only said you were a couple
of geese," Will Dobbin said, perceiving Miss Ann's pink eyes
were beginning to moisten as usual. "Well, you're not geese,
you're swans—anything you like, only do, do leave Miss Sedley
alone."
Anything like William's infatuation
about that silly little flirting, ogling thing was never known, the
mamma and sisters agreed together in thinking: and they trembled
lest, her engagement being off with Osborne, she should take up
immediately her other admirer and Captain. In which forebodings these
worthy young women no doubt judged according to the best of their
experience; or rather (for as yet they had had no opportunities of
marrying or of jilting) according to their own notions of right and
wrong.
"It is a mercy, Mamma, that the
regiment is ordered abroad," the girls said. "THIS danger,
at any rate, is spared our brother."
Such, indeed, was the fact; and so it
is that the French Emperor comes in to perform a part in this
domestic comedy of Vanity Fair which we are now playing, and which
would never have been enacted without the intervention of this august
mute personage. It was he that ruined the Bourbons and Mr. John
Sedley. It was he whose arrival in his capital called up all France
in arms to defend him there; and all Europe to oust him. While the
French nation and army were swearing fidelity round the eagles in the
Champ de Mars, four mighty European hosts were getting in motion for
the great chasse a l'aigle; and one of these was a British army, of
which two heroes of ours, Captain Dobbin and Captain Osborne, formed
a portion.
The news of Napoleon's escape and
landing was received by the gallant —th with a fiery delight and
enthusiasm, which everybody can understand who knows that famous
corps. From the colonel to the smallest drummer in the regiment, all
were filled with hope and ambition and patriotic fury; and thanked
the French Emperor as for a personal kindness in coming to disturb
the peace of Europe. Now was the time the —th had so long panted
for, to show their comrades in arms that they could fight as well as
the Peninsular veterans, and that all the pluck and valour of the —th
had not been killed by the West Indies and the yellow fever. Stubble
and Spooney looked to get their companies without purchase. Before
the end of the campaign (which she resolved to share), Mrs. Major
O'Dowd hoped to write herself Mrs. Colonel O'Dowd, C.B. Our two
friends (Dobbin and Osborne) were quite as much excited as the rest:
and each in his way—Mr. Dobbin very quietly, Mr. Osborne very
loudly and energetically—was bent upon doing his duty, and gaining
his share of honour and distinction.
The agitation thrilling through the
country and army in consequence of this news was so great, that
private matters were little heeded: and hence probably George
Osborne, just gazetted to his company, busy with preparations for the
march, which must come inevitably, and panting for further
promotion—was not so much affected by other incidents which would
have interested him at a more quiet period. He was not, it must be
confessed, very much cast down by good old Mr. Sedley's catastrophe.
He tried his new uniform, which became him very handsomely, on the
day when the first meeting of the creditors of the unfortunate
gentleman took place. His father told him of the wicked, rascally,
shameful conduct of the bankrupt, reminded him of what he had said
about Amelia, and that their connection was broken off for ever; and
gave him that evening a good sum of money to pay for the new clothes
and epaulets in which he looked so well. Money was always useful to
this free-handed young fellow, and he took it without many words. The
bills were up in the Sedley house, where he had passed so many, many
happy hours. He could see them as he walked from home that night (to
the Old Slaughters', where he put up when in town) shining white in
the moon. That comfortable home was shut, then, upon Amelia and her
parents: where had they taken refuge? The thought of their ruin
affected him not a little. He was very melancholy that night in the
coffee-room at the Slaughters'; and drank a good deal, as his
comrades remarked there.
Dobbin came in presently, cautioned him
about the drink, which he only took, he said, because he was deuced
low; but when his friend began to put to him clumsy inquiries, and
asked him for news in a significant manner, Osborne declined entering
into conversation with him, avowing, however, that he was devilish
disturbed and unhappy.
Three days afterwards, Dobbin found
Osborne in his room at the barracks—his head on the table, a number
of papers about, the young Captain evidently in a state of great
despondency. "She—she's sent me back some things I gave
her—some damned trinkets. Look here!" There was a little
packet directed in the well-known hand to Captain George Osborne, and
some things lying about—a ring, a silver knife he had bought, as a
boy, for her at a fair; a gold chain, and a locket with hair in it.
"It's all over," said he, with a groan of sickening
remorse. "Look, Will, you may read it if you like."
There was a little letter of a few
lines, to which he pointed, which said:
My papa has ordered me to return to you
these presents, which you made in happier days to me; and I am to
write to you for the last time. I think, I know you feel as much as I
do the blow which has come upon us. It is I that absolve you from an
engagement which is impossible in our present misery. I am sure you
had no share in it, or in the cruel suspicions of Mr. Osborne, which
are the hardest of all our griefs to bear. Farewell. Farewell. I pray
God to strengthen me to bear this and other calamities, and to bless
you always. A.
I shall often play upon the piano—your
piano. It was like you to send it.
Dobbin was very soft-hearted. The sight
of women and children in pain always used to melt him. The idea of
Amelia broken-hearted and lonely tore that good-natured soul with
anguish. And he broke out into an emotion, which anybody who likes
may consider unmanly. He swore that Amelia was an angel, to which
Osborne said aye with all his heart. He, too, had been reviewing the
history of their lives— and had seen her from her childhood to her
present age, so sweet, so innocent, so charmingly simple, and
artlessly fond and tender.
What a pang it was to lose all that: to
have had it and not prized it! A thousand homely scenes and
recollections crowded on him—in which he always saw her good and
beautiful. And for himself, he blushed with remorse and shame, as the
remembrance of his own selfishness and indifference contrasted with
that perfect purity. For a while, glory, war, everything was
forgotten, and the pair of friends talked about her only.
"Where are they?" Osborne
asked, after a long talk, and a long pause—and, in truth, with no
little shame at thinking that he had taken no steps to follow her.
"Where are they? There's no address to the note."
Dobbin knew. He had not merely sent the
piano; but had written a note to Mrs. Sedley, and asked permission to
come and see her—and he had seen her, and Amelia too, yesterday,
before he came down to Chatham; and, what is more, he had brought
that farewell letter and packet which had so moved them.
The good-natured fellow had found Mrs.
Sedley only too willing to receive him, and greatly agitated by the
arrival of the piano, which, as she conjectured, MUST have come from
George, and was a signal of amity on his part. Captain Dobbin did not
correct this error of the worthy lady, but listened to all her story
of complaints and misfortunes with great sympathy—condoled with her
losses and privations, and agreed in reprehending the cruel conduct
of Mr. Osborne towards his first benefactor. When she had eased her
overflowing bosom somewhat, and poured forth many of her sorrows, he
had the courage to ask actually to see Amelia, who was above in her
room as usual, and whom her mother led trembling downstairs.
Her appearance was so ghastly, and her
look of despair so pathetic, that honest William Dobbin was
frightened as he beheld it; and read the most fatal forebodings in
that pale fixed face. After sitting in his company a minute or two,
she put the packet into his hand, and said, "Take this to
Captain Osborne, if you please, and—and I hope he's quite well—and
it was very kind of you to come and see us—and we like our new
house very much. And I—I think I'll go upstairs, Mamma, for I'm not
very strong." And with this, and a curtsey and a smile, the poor
child went her way. The mother, as she led her up, cast back looks of
anguish towards Dobbin. The good fellow wanted no such appeal. He
loved her himself too fondly for that. Inexpressible grief, and pity,
and terror pursued him, and he came away as if he was a criminal
after seeing her.
When Osborne heard that his friend had
found her, he made hot and anxious inquiries regarding the poor
child. How was she? How did she look? What did she say? His comrade
took his hand, and looked him in the face.
"George, she's dying,"
William Dobbin said—and could speak no more.
There was a buxom Irish servant-girl,
who performed all the duties of the little house where the Sedley
family had found refuge: and this girl had in vain, on many previous
days, striven to give Amelia aid or consolation. Emmy was much too
sad to answer, or even to be aware of the attempts the other was
making in her favour.
Four hours after the talk between
Dobbin and Osborne, this servant- maid came into Amelia's room, where
she sate as usual, brooding silently over her letters—her little
treasures. The girl, smiling, and looking arch and happy, made many
trials to attract poor Emmy's attention, who, however, took no heed
of her.
"Miss Emmy," said the girl.
"I'm coming," Emmy said, not
looking round.
"There's a message," the maid
went on. "There's something— somebody—sure, here's a new
letter for you—don't be reading them old ones any more." And
she gave her a letter, which Emmy took, and read.
"I must see you," the letter
said. "Dearest Emmy—dearest love— dearest wife, come to me."
George and her mother were outside,
waiting until she had read the letter.
Chapter XIX
*
Miss Crawley at Nurse
We have seen how Mrs. Firkin, the
lady's maid, as soon as any event of importance to the Crawley family
came to her knowledge, felt bound to communicate it to Mrs. Bute
Crawley, at the Rectory; and have before mentioned how particularly
kind and attentive that good- natured lady was to Miss Crawley's
confidential servant. She had been a gracious friend to Miss Briggs,
the companion, also; and had secured the latter's good-will by a
number of those attentions and promises, which cost so little in the
making, and are yet so valuable and agreeable to the recipient.
Indeed every good economist and manager of a household must know how
cheap and yet how amiable these professions are, and what a flavour
they give to the most homely dish in life. Who was the blundering
idiot who said that "fine words butter no parsnips"? Half
the parsnips of society are served and rendered palatable with no
other sauce. As the immortal Alexis Soyer can make more delicious
soup for a half-penny than an ignorant cook can concoct with pounds
of vegetables and meat, so a skilful artist will make a few simple
and pleasing phrases go farther than ever so much substantial
benefit-stock in the hands of a mere bungler. Nay, we know that
substantial benefits often sicken some stomachs; whereas, most will
digest any amount of fine words, and be always eager for more of the
same food. Mrs. Bute had told Briggs and Firkin so often of the depth
of her affection for them; and what she would do, if she had Miss
Crawley's fortune, for friends so excellent and attached, that the
ladies in question had the deepest regard for her; and felt as much
gratitude and confidence as if Mrs. Bute had loaded them with the
most expensive favours.
Rawdon Crawley, on the other hand, like
a selfish heavy dragoon as he was, never took the least trouble to
conciliate his aunt's aides- de-camp, showed his contempt for the
pair with entire frankness— made Firkin pull off his boots on one
occasion—sent her out in the rain on ignominious messages—and if
he gave her a guinea, flung it to her as if it were a box on the ear.
As his aunt, too, made a butt of Briggs, the Captain followed the
example, and levelled his jokes at her—jokes about as delicate as a
kick from his charger. Whereas, Mrs. Bute consulted her in matters of
taste or difficulty, admired her poetry, and by a thousand acts of
kindness and politeness, showed her appreciation of Briggs; and if
she made Firkin a twopenny-halfpenny present, accompanied it with so
many compliments, that the twopence-half-penny was transmuted into
gold in the heart of the grateful waiting-maid, who, besides, was
looking forwards quite contentedly to some prodigious benefit which
must happen to her on the day when Mrs. Bute came into her fortune.
The different conduct of these two
people is pointed out respectfully to the attention of persons
commencing the world. Praise everybody, I say to such: never be
squeamish, but speak out your compliment both point-blank in a man's
face, and behind his back, when you know there is a reasonable chance
of his hearing it again. Never lose a chance of saying a kind word.
As Collingwood never saw a vacant place in his estate but he took an
acorn out of his pocket and popped it in; so deal with your
compliments through life. An acorn costs nothing; but it may sprout
into a prodigious bit of timber.
In a word, during Rawdon Crawley's
prosperity, he was only obeyed with sulky acquiescence; when his
disgrace came, there was nobody to help or pity him. Whereas, when
Mrs. Bute took the command at Miss Crawley's house, the garrison
there were charmed to act under such a leader, expecting all sorts of
promotion from her promises, her generosity, and her kind words.
That he would consider himself beaten,
after one defeat, and make no attempt to regain the position he had
lost, Mrs. Bute Crawley never allowed herself to suppose. She knew
Rebecca to be too clever and spirited and desperate a woman to submit
without a struggle; and felt that she must prepare for that combat,
and be incessantly watchful against assault; or mine, or surprise.
In the first place, though she held the
town, was she sure of the principal inhabitant? Would Miss Crawley
herself hold out; and had she not a secret longing to welcome back
the ousted adversary? The old lady liked Rawdon, and Rebecca, who
amused her. Mrs. Bute could not disguise from herself the fact that
none of her party could so contribute to the pleasures of the
town-bred lady. "My girls' singing, after that little odious
governess's, I know is unbearable," the candid Rector's wife
owned to herself. "She always used to go to sleep when Martha
and Louisa played their duets. Jim's stiff college manners and poor
dear Bute's talk about his dogs and horses always annoyed her. If I
took her to the Rectory, she would grow angry with us all, and fly, I
know she would; and might fall into that horrid Rawdon's clutches
again, and be the victim of that little viper of a Sharp. Meanwhile,
it is clear to me that she is exceedingly unwell, and cannot move for
some weeks, at any rate; during which we must think of some plan to
protect her from the arts of those unprincipled people."
In the very best-of moments, if anybody
told Miss Crawley that she was, or looked ill, the trembling old lady
sent off for her doctor; and I daresay she was very unwell after the
sudden family event, which might serve to shake stronger nerves than
hers. At least, Mrs. Bute thought it was her duty to inform the
physician, and the apothecary, and the dame-de-compagnie, and the
domestics, that Miss Crawley was in a most critical state, and that
they were to act accordingly. She had the street laid knee-deep with
straw; and the knocker put by with Mr. Bowls's plate. She insisted
that the Doctor should call twice a day; and deluged her patient with
draughts every two hours. When anybody entered the room, she uttered
a shshshsh so sibilant and ominous, that it frightened the poor old
lady in her bed, from which she could not look without seeing Mrs.
Bute's beady eyes eagerly fixed on her, as the latter sate steadfast
in the arm- chair by the bedside. They seemed to lighten in the dark
(for she kept the curtains closed) as she moved about the room on
velvet paws like a cat. There Miss Crawley lay for days—ever so
many days—Mr. Bute reading books of devotion to her: for nights,
long nights, during which she had to hear the watchman sing, the
night-light sputter; visited at midnight, the last thing, by the
stealthy apothecary; and then left to look at Mrs. Bute's twinkling
eyes, or the flicks of yellow that the rushlight threw on the dreary
darkened ceiling. Hygeia herself would have fallen sick under such a
regimen; and how much more this poor old nervous victim? It has been
said that when she was in health and good spirits, this venerable
inhabitant of Vanity Fair had as free notions about religion and
morals as Monsieur de Voltaire himself could desire, but when illness
overtook her, it was aggravated by the most dreadful terrors of
death, and an utter cowardice took possession of the prostrate old
sinner.
Sick-bed homilies and pious reflections
are, to be sure, out of place in mere story-books, and we are not
going (after the fashion of some novelists of the present day) to
cajole the public into a sermon, when it is only a comedy that the
reader pays his money to witness. But, without preaching, the truth
may surely be borne in mind, that the bustle, and triumph, and
laughter, and gaiety which Vanity Fair exhibits in public, do not
always pursue the performer into private life, and that the most
dreary depression of spirits and dismal repentances sometimes
overcome him. Recollection of the best ordained banquets will
scarcely cheer sick epicures. Reminiscences of the most becoming
dresses and brilliant ball triumphs will go very little way to
console faded beauties. Perhaps statesmen, at a particular period of
existence, are not much gratified at thinking over the most
triumphant divisions; and the success or the pleasure of yesterday
becomes of very small account when a certain (albeit uncertain)
morrow is in view, about which all of us must some day or other be
speculating. O brother wearers of motley! Are there not moments when
one grows sick of grinning and tumbling, and the jingling of cap and
bells? This, dear friends and companions, is my amiable object—to
walk with you through the Fair, to examine the shops and the shows
there; and that we should all come home after the flare, and the
noise, and the gaiety, and be perfectly miserable in private.
"If that poor man of mine had a
head on his shoulders," Mrs. Bute Crawley thought to herself,
"how useful he might be, under present circumstances, to this
unhappy old lady! He might make her repent of her shocking
free-thinking ways; he might urge her to do her duty, and cast off
that odious reprobate who has disgraced himself and his family; and
he might induce her to do justice to my dear girls and the two boys,
who require and deserve, I am sure, every assistance which their
relatives can give them."
And, as the hatred of vice is always a
progress towards virtue, Mrs. Bute Crawley endeavoured to instil her
sister-in-law a proper abhorrence for all Rawdon Crawley's manifold
sins: of which his uncle's wife brought forward such a catalogue as
indeed would have served to condemn a whole regiment of young
officers. If a man has committed wrong in life, I don't know any
moralist more anxious to point his errors out to the world than his
own relations; so Mrs. Bute showed a perfect family interest and
knowledge of Rawdon's history. She had all the particulars of that
ugly quarrel with Captain Marker, in which Rawdon, wrong from the
beginning, ended in shooting the Captain. She knew how the unhappy
Lord Dovedale, whose mamma had taken a house at Oxford, so that he
might be educated there, and who had never touched a card in his life
till he came to London, was perverted by Rawdon at the Cocoa-Tree,
made helplessly tipsy by this abominable seducer and perverter of
youth, and fleeced of four thousand pounds. She described with the
most vivid minuteness the agonies of the country families whom he had
ruined— the sons whom he had plunged into dishonour and poverty—the
daughters whom he had inveigled into perdition. She knew the poor
tradesmen who were bankrupt by his extravagance—the mean shifts and
rogueries with which he had ministered to it—the astounding
falsehoods by which he had imposed upon the most generous of aunts,
and the ingratitude and ridicule by which he had repaid her
sacrifices. She imparted these stories gradually to Miss Crawley;
gave her the whole benefit of them; felt it to be her bounden duty as
a Christian woman and mother of a family to do so; had not the
smallest remorse or compunction for the victim whom her tongue was
immolating; nay, very likely thought her act was quite meritorious,
and plumed herself upon her resolute manner of performing it. Yes, if
a man's character is to be abused, say what you will, there's nobody
like a relation to do the business. And one is bound to own,
regarding this unfortunate wretch of a Rawdon Crawley, that the mere
truth was enough to condemn him, and that all inventions of scandal
were quite superfluous pains on his friends' parts.
Rebecca, too, being now a relative,
came in for the fullest share of Mrs. Bute's kind inquiries. This
indefatigable pursuer of truth (having given strict orders that the
door was to be denied to all emissaries or letters from Rawdon), took
Miss Crawley's carriage, and drove to her old friend Miss Pinkerton,
at Minerva House, Chiswick Mall, to whom she announced the dreadful
intelligence of Captain Rawdon's seduction by Miss Sharp, and from
whom she got sundry strange particulars regarding the ex-governess's
birth and early history. The friend of the Lexicographer had plenty
of information to give. Miss Jemima was made to fetch the drawing-
master's receipts and letters. This one was from a spunging-house:
that entreated an advance: another was full of gratitude for
Rebecca's reception by the ladies of Chiswick: and the last document
from the unlucky artist's pen was that in which, from his dying bed,
he recommended his orphan child to Miss Pinkerton's protection. There
were juvenile letters and petitions from Rebecca, too, in the
collection, imploring aid for her father or declaring her own
gratitude. Perhaps in Vanity Fair there are no better satires than
letters. Take a bundle of your dear friend's of ten years back—
your dear friend whom you hate now. Look at a file of your sister's!
how you clung to each other till you quarrelled about the
twenty-pound legacy! Get down the round-hand scrawls of your son who
has half broken your heart with selfish undutifulness since; or a
parcel of your own, breathing endless ardour and love eternal, which
were sent back by your mistress when she married the Nabob— your
mistress for whom you now care no more than for Queen Elizabeth.
Vows, love, promises, confidences, gratitude, how queerly they read
after a while! There ought to be a law in Vanity Fair ordering the
destruction of every written document (except receipted tradesmen's
bills) after a certain brief and proper interval. Those quacks and
misanthropes who advertise indelible Japan ink should be made to
perish along with their wicked discoveries. The best ink for Vanity
Fair use would be one that faded utterly in a couple of days, and
left the paper clean and blank, so that you might write on it to
somebody else.
From Miss Pinkerton's the indefatigable
Mrs. Bute followed the track of Sharp and his daughter back to the
lodgings in Greek Street, which the defunct painter had occupied; and
where portraits of the landlady in white satin, and of the husband in
brass buttons, done by Sharp in lieu of a quarter's rent, still
decorated the parlour walls. Mrs. Stokes was a communicative person,
and quickly told all she knew about Mr. Sharp; how dissolute and poor
he was; how good- natured and amusing; how he was always hunted by
bailiffs and duns; how, to the landlady's horror, though she never
could abide the woman, he did not marry his wife till a short time
before her death; and what a queer little wild vixen his daughter
was; how she kept them all laughing with her fun and mimicry; how she
used to fetch the gin from the public-house, and was known in all the
studios in the quarter—in brief, Mrs. Bute got such a full account
of her new niece's parentage, education, and behaviour as would
scarcely have pleased Rebecca, had the latter known that such
inquiries were being made concerning her.
Of all these industrious researches
Miss Crawley had the full benefit. Mrs. Rawdon Crawley was the
daughter of an opera-girl. She had danced herself. She had been a
model to the painters. She was brought up as became her mother's
daughter. She drank gin with her father, &c. &c. It was a
lost woman who was married to a lost man; and the moral to be
inferred from Mrs. Bute's tale was, that the knavery of the pair was
irremediable, and that no properly conducted person should ever
notice them again.
These were the materials which prudent
Mrs. Bute gathered together in Park Lane, the provisions and
ammunition as it were with which she fortified the house against the
siege which she knew that Rawdon and his wife would lay to Miss
Crawley.
But if a fault may be found with her
arrangements, it is this, that she was too eager: she managed rather
too well; undoubtedly she made Miss Crawley more ill than was
necessary; and though the old invalid succumbed to her authority, it
was so harassing and severe, that the victim would be inclined to
escape at the very first chance which fell in her way. Managing
women, the ornaments of their sex—women who order everything for
everybody, and know so much better than any person concerned what is
good for their neighbours, don't sometimes speculate upon the
possibility of a domestic revolt, or upon other extreme consequences
resulting from their overstrained authority.
Thus, for instance, Mrs. Bute, with the
best intentions no doubt in the world, and wearing herself to death
as she did by foregoing sleep, dinner, fresh air, for the sake of her
invalid sister-in-law, carried her conviction of the old lady's
illness so far that she almost managed her into her coffin. She
pointed out her sacrifices and their results one day to the constant
apothecary, Mr. Clump.
"I am sure, my dear Mr. Clump,"
she said, "no efforts of mine have been wanting to restore our
dear invalid, whom the ingratitude of her nephew has laid on the bed
of sickness. I never shrink from personal discomfort: I never refuse
to sacrifice myself."
"Your devotion, it must be
confessed, is admirable," Mr. Clump says, with a low bow; "but—"
"I have scarcely closed my eyes
since my arrival: I give up sleep, health, every comfort, to my sense
of duty. When my poor James was in the smallpox, did I allow any
hireling to nurse him? No."
"You did what became an excellent
mother, my dear Madam—the best of mothers; but—"
"As the mother of a family and the
wife of an English clergyman, I humbly trust that my principles are
good," Mrs. Bute said, with a happy solemnity of conviction;
"and, as long as Nature supports me, never, never, Mr. Clump,
will I desert the post of duty. Others may bring that grey head with
sorrow to the bed of sickness (here Mrs. Bute, waving her hand,
pointed to one of old Miss Crawley's coffee- coloured fronts, which
was perched on a stand in the dressing-room), but I will never quit
it. Ah, Mr. Clump! I fear, I know, that the couch needs spiritual as
well as medical consolation."
"What I was going to observe, my
dear Madam,"—here the resolute Clump once more interposed with
a bland air—"what I was going to observe when you gave
utterance to sentiments which do you so much honour, was that I think
you alarm yourself needlessly about our kind friend, and sacrifice
your own health too prodigally in her favour."
"I would lay down my life for my
duty, or for any member of my husband's family," Mrs. Bute
interposed.
"Yes, Madam, if need were; but we
don't want Mrs Bute Crawley to be a martyr," Clump said
gallantly. "Dr Squills and myself have both considered Miss
Crawley's case with every anxiety and care, as you may suppose. We
see her low-spirited and nervous; family events have agitated her."
"Her nephew will come to
perdition," Mrs. Crawley cried.
"Have agitated her: and you
arrived like a guardian angel, my dear Madam, a positive guardian
angel, I assure you, to soothe her under the pressure of calamity.
But Dr. Squills and I were thinking that our amiable friend is not in
such a state as renders confinement to her bed necessary. She is
depressed, but this confinement perhaps adds to her depression. She
should have change, fresh air, gaiety; the most delightful remedies
in the pharmacopoeia," Mr. Clump said, grinning and showing his
handsome teeth. "Persuade her to rise, dear Madam; drag her from
her couch and her low spirits; insist upon her taking little drives.
They will restore the roses too to your cheeks, if I may so speak to
Mrs. Bute Crawley."
"The sight of her horrid nephew
casually in the Park, where I am told the wretch drives with the
brazen partner of his crimes," Mrs. Bute said (letting the cat
of selfishness out of the bag of secrecy), "would cause her such
a shock, that we should have to bring her back to bed again. She must
not go out, Mr. Clump. She shall not go out as long as I remain to
watch over her; And as for my health, what matters it? I give it
cheerfully, sir. I sacrifice it at the altar of my duty."
"Upon my word, Madam," Mr.
Clump now said bluntly, "I won't answer for her life if she
remains locked up in that dark room. She is so nervous that we may
lose her any day; and if you wish Captain Crawley to be her heir, I
warn you frankly, Madam, that you are doing your very best to serve
him."
"Gracious mercy! is her life in
danger?" Mrs. Bute cried. "Why, why, Mr. Clump, did you not
inform me sooner?"
The night before, Mr. Clump and Dr.
Squills had had a consultation (over a bottle of wine at the house of
Sir Lapin Warren, whose lady was about to present him with a
thirteenth blessing), regarding Miss Crawley and her case.
"What a little harpy that woman
from Hampshire is, Clump," Squills remarked, "that has
seized upon old Tilly Crawley. Devilish good Madeira."
"What a fool Rawdon Crawley has
been," Clump replied, "to go and marry a governess! There
was something about the girl, too."
"Green eyes, fair skin, pretty
figure, famous frontal development," Squills remarked. "There
is something about her; and Crawley was a fool, Squills."
"A d— fool—always was,"
the apothecary replied.
"Of course the old girl will fling
him over," said the physician, and after a pause added, "She'll
cut up well, I suppose."
"Cut up," says Clump with a
grin; "I wouldn't have her cut up for two hundred a year."
"That Hampshire woman will kill
her in two months, Clump, my boy, if she stops about her," Dr.
Squills said. "Old woman; full feeder; nervous subject;
palpitation of the heart; pressure on the brain; apoplexy; off she
goes. Get her up, Clump; get her out: or I wouldn't give many weeks'
purchase for your two hundred a year." And it was acting upon
this hint that the worthy apothecary spoke with so much candour to
Mrs. Bute Crawley.
Having the old lady under her hand: in
bed: with nobody near, Mrs. Bute had made more than one assault upon
her, to induce her to alter her will. But Miss Crawley's usual
terrors regarding death increased greatly when such dismal
propositions were made to her, and Mrs. Bute saw that she must get
her patient into cheerful spirits and health before she could hope to
attain the pious object which she had in view. Whither to take her
was the next puzzle. The only place where she is not likely to meet
those odious Rawdons is at church, and that won't amuse her, Mrs.
Bute justly felt. "We must go and visit our beautiful suburbs of
London," she then thought. "I hear they are the most
picturesque in the world"; and so she had a sudden interest for
Hampstead, and Hornsey, and found that Dulwich had great charms for
her, and getting her victim into her carriage, drove her to those
rustic spots, beguiling the little journeys with conversations about
Rawdon and his wife, and telling every story to the old lady which
could add to her indignation against this pair of reprobates.
Perhaps Mrs. Bute pulled the string
unnecessarily tight. For though she worked up Miss Crawley to a
proper dislike of her disobedient nephew, the invalid had a great
hatred and secret terror of her victimizer, and panted to escape from
her. After a brief space, she rebelled against Highgate and Hornsey
utterly. She would go into the Park. Mrs. Bute knew they would meet
the abominable Rawdon there, and she was right. One day in the ring,
Rawdon's stanhope came in sight; Rebecca was seated by him. In the
enemy's equipage Miss Crawley occupied her usual place, with Mrs.
Bute on her left, the poodle and Miss Briggs on the back seat. It was
a nervous moment, and Rebecca's heart beat quick as she recognized
the carriage; and as the two vehicles crossed each other in a line,
she clasped her hands, and looked towards the spinster with a face of
agonized attachment and devotion. Rawdon himself trembled, and his
face grew purple behind his dyed mustachios. Only old Briggs was
moved in the other carriage, and cast her great eyes nervously
towards her old friends. Miss Crawley's bonnet was resolutely turned
towards the Serpentine. Mrs. Bute happened to be in ecstasies with
the poodle, and was calling him a little darling, and a sweet little
zoggy, and a pretty pet. The carriages moved on, each in his line.
"Done, by Jove," Rawdon said
to his wife.
"Try once more, Rawdon,"
Rebecca answered. "Could not you lock your wheels into theirs,
dearest?"
Rawdon had not the heart for that
manoeuvre. When the carriages met again, he stood up in his stanhope;
he raised his hand ready to doff his hat; he looked with all his
eyes. But this time Miss Crawley's face was not turned away; she and
Mrs. Bute looked him full in the face, and cut their nephew
pitilessly. He sank back in his seat with an oath, and striking out
of the ring, dashed away desperately homewards.
It was a gallant and decided triumph
for Mrs. Bute. But she felt the danger of many such meetings, as she
saw the evident nervousness of Miss Crawley; and she determined that
it was most necessary for her dear friend's health, that they should
leave town for a while, and recommended Brighton very strongly.
Chapter XX
*
In Which Captain Dobbin Acts as the
Messenger of Hymen
Without knowing how, Captain William
Dobbin found himself the great promoter, arranger, and manager of the
match between George Osborne and Amelia. But for him it never would
have taken place: he could not but confess as much to himself, and
smiled rather bitterly as he thought that he of all men in the world
should be the person upon whom the care of this marriage had fallen.
But though indeed the conducting of this negotiation was about as
painful a task as could be set to him, yet when he had a duty to
perform, Captain Dobbin was accustomed to go through it without many
words or much hesitation: and, having made up his mind completely,
that if Miss Sedley was balked of her husband she would die of the
disappointment, he was determined to use all his best endeavours to
keep her alive.
I forbear to enter into minute
particulars of the interview between George and Amelia, when the
former was brought back to the feet (or should we venture to say the
arms?) of his young mistress by the intervention of his friend honest
William. A much harder heart than George's would have melted at the
sight of that sweet face so sadly ravaged by grief and despair, and
at the simple tender accents in which she told her little
broken-hearted story: but as she did not faint when her mother,
trembling, brought Osborne to her; and as she only gave relief to her
overcharged grief, by laying her head on her lover's shoulder and
there weeping for a while the most tender, copious, and refreshing
tears—old Mrs. Sedley, too greatly relieved, thought it was best to
leave the young persons to themselves; and so quitted Emmy crying
over George's hand, and kissing it humbly, as if he were her supreme
chief and master, and as if she were quite a guilty and unworthy
person needing every favour and grace from him.
This prostration and sweet unrepining
obedience exquisitely touched and flattered George Osborne. He saw a
slave before him in that simple yielding faithful creature, and his
soul within him thrilled secretly somehow at the knowledge of his
power. He would be generous-minded, Sultan as he was, and raise up
this kneeling Esther and make a queen of her: besides, her sadness
and beauty touched him as much as her submission, and so he cheered
her, and raised her up and forgave her, so to speak. All her hopes
and feelings, which were dying and withering, this her sun having
been removed from her, bloomed again and at once, its light being
restored. You would scarcely have recognised the beaming little face
upon Amelia's pillow that night as the one that was laid there the
night before, so wan, so lifeless, so careless of all round about.
The honest Irish maid-servant, delighted with the change, asked leave
to kiss the face that had grown all of a sudden so rosy. Amelia put
her arms round the girl's neck and kissed her with all her heart,
like a child. She was little more. She had that night a sweet
refreshing sleep, like one—and what a spring of inexpressible
happiness as she woke in the morning sunshine!
"He will be here again to-day,"
Amelia thought. "He is the greatest and best of men." And
the fact is, that George thought he was one of the generousest
creatures alive: and that he was making a tremendous sacrifice in
marrying this young creature.
While she and Osborne were having their
delightful tete-a-tete above stairs, old Mrs. Sedley and Captain
Dobbin were conversing below upon the state of the affairs, and the
chances and future arrangements of the young people. Mrs. Sedley
having brought the two lovers together and left them embracing each
other with all their might, like a true woman, was of opinion that no
power on earth would induce Mr. Sedley to consent to the match
between his daughter and the son of a man who had so shamefully,
wickedly, and monstrously treated him. And she told a long story
about happier days and their earlier splendours, when Osborne lived
in a very humble way in the New Road, and his wife was too glad to
receive some of Jos's little baby things, with which Mrs. Sedley
accommodated her at the birth of one of Osborne's own children. The
fiendish ingratitude of that man, she was sure, had broken Mr. S.'s
heart: and as for a marriage, he would never, never, never, never
consent.
"They must run away together,
Ma'am," Dobbin said, laughing, "and follow the example of
Captain Rawdon Crawley, and Miss Emmy's friend the little governess."
Was it possible? Well she never! Mrs. Sedley was all excitement about
this news. She wished that Blenkinsop were here to hear it:
Blenkinsop always mistrusted that Miss Sharp.— What an escape Jos
had had! and she described the already well-known love-passages
between Rebecca and the Collector of Boggley Wollah.
It was not, however, Mr. Sedley's wrath
which Dobbin feared, so much as that of the other parent concerned,
and he owned that he had a very considerable doubt and anxiety
respecting the behaviour of the black-browed old tyrant of a Russia
merchant in Russell Square. He has forbidden the match peremptorily,
Dobbin thought. He knew what a savage determined man Osborne was, and
how he stuck by his word. "The only chance George has of
reconcilement," argued his friend, "is by distinguishing
himself in the coming campaign. If he dies they both go together. If
he fails in distinction—what then? He has some money from his
mother, I have heard enough to purchase his majority—or he must
sell out and go and dig in Canada, or rough it in a cottage in the
country." With such a partner Dobbin thought he would not mind
Siberia—and, strange to say, this absurd and utterly imprudent
young fellow never for a moment considered that the want of means to
keep a nice carriage and horses, and of an income which should enable
its possessors to entertain their friends genteelly, ought to operate
as bars to the union of George and Miss Sedley.
It was these weighty considerations
which made him think too that the marriage should take place as
quickly as possible. Was he anxious himself, I wonder, to have it
over?—as people, when death has occurred, like to press forward the
funeral, or when a parting is resolved upon, hasten it. It is certain
that Mr. Dobbin, having taken the matter in hand, was most
extraordinarily eager in the conduct of it. He urged on George the
necessity of immediate action: he showed the chances of
reconciliation with his father, which a favourable mention of his
name in the Gazette must bring about. If need were he would go
himself and brave both the fathers in the business. At all events, he
besought George to go through with it before the orders came, which
everybody expected, for the departure of the regiment from England on
foreign service.
Bent upon these hymeneal projects, and
with the applause and consent of Mrs. Sedley, who did not care to
break the matter personally to her husband, Mr. Dobbin went to seek
John Sedley at his house of call in the City, the Tapioca
Coffee-house, where, since his own offices were shut up, and fate had
overtaken him, the poor broken- down old gentleman used to betake
himself daily, and write letters and receive them, and tie them up
into mysterious bundles, several of which he carried in the flaps of
his coat. I don't know anything more dismal than that business and
bustle and mystery of a ruined man: those letters from the wealthy
which he shows you: those worn greasy documents promising support and
offering condolence which he places wistfully before you, and on
which he builds his hopes of restoration and future fortune. My
beloved reader has no doubt in the course of his experience been
waylaid by many such a luckless companion. He takes you into the
corner; he has his bundle of papers out of his gaping coat pocket;
and the tape off, and the string in his mouth, and the favourite
letters selected and laid before you; and who does not know the sad
eager half-crazy look which he fixes on you with his hopeless eyes?
Changed into a man of this sort, Dobbin
found the once florid, jovial, and prosperous John Sedley. His coat,
that used to be so glossy and trim, was white at the seams, and the
buttons showed the copper. His face had fallen in, and was unshorn;
his frill and neckcloth hung limp under his bagging waistcoat. When
he used to treat the boys in old days at a coffee-house, he would
shout and laugh louder than anybody there, and have all the waiters
skipping round him; it was quite painful to see how humble and civil
he was to John of the Tapioca, a blear-eyed old attendant in dingy
stockings and cracked pumps, whose business it was to serve glasses
of wafers, and bumpers of ink in pewter, and slices of paper to the
frequenters of this dreary house of entertainment, where nothing else
seemed to be consumed. As for William Dobbin, whom he had tipped
repeatedly in his youth, and who had been the old gentleman's butt on
a thousand occasions, old Sedley gave his hand to him in a very
hesitating humble manner now, and called him "Sir." A
feeling of shame and remorse took possession of William Dobbin as the
broken old man so received and addressed him, as if he himself had
been somehow guilty of the misfortunes which had brought Sedley so
low.
"I am very glad to see you,
Captain Dobbin, sir," says he, after a skulking look or two at
his visitor (whose lanky figure and military appearance caused some
excitement likewise to twinkle in the blear eyes of the waiter in the
cracked dancing pumps, and awakened the old lady in black, who dozed
among the mouldy old coffee-cups in the bar). "How is the worthy
alderman, and my lady, your excellent mother, sir?" He looked
round at the waiter as he said, "My lady," as much as to
say, "Hark ye, John, I have friends still, and persons of rank
and reputation, too." "Are you come to do anything in my
way, sir? My young friends Dale and Spiggot do all my business for me
now, until my new offices are ready; for I'm only here temporarily,
you know, Captain. What can we do for you. sir? Will you like to take
anything?"
Dobbin, with a great deal of hesitation
and stuttering, protested that he was not in the least hungry or
thirsty; that he had no business to transact; that he only came to
ask if Mr. Sedley was well, and to shake hands with an old friend;
and, he added, with a desperate perversion of truth, "My mother
is very well—that is, she's been very unwell, and is only waiting
for the first fine day to go out and call upon Mrs. Sedley. How is
Mrs. Sedley, sir? I hope she's quite well." And here he paused,
reflecting on his own consummate hypocrisy; for the day was as fine,
and the sunshine as bright as it ever is in Coffin Court, where the
Tapioca Coffee-house is situated: and Mr. Dobbin remembered that he
had seen Mrs. Sedley himself only an hour before, having driven
Osborne down to Fulham in his gig, and left him there tete-a-tete
with Miss Amelia.
"My wife will be very happy to see
her ladyship," Sedley replied, pulling out his papers. "I've
a very kind letter here from your father, sir, and beg my respectful
compliments to him. Lady D. will find us in rather a smaller house
than we were accustomed to receive our friends in; but it's snug, and
the change of air does good to my daughter, who was suffering in town
rather—you remember little Emmy, sir?—yes, suffering a good
deal." The old gentleman's eyes were wandering as he spoke, and
he was thinking of something else, as he sate thrumming on his papers
and fumbling at the worn red tape.
"You're a military man," he
went on; "I ask you, Bill Dobbin, could any man ever have
speculated upon the return of that Corsican scoundrel from Elba? When
the allied sovereigns were here last year, and we gave 'em that
dinner in the City, sir, and we saw the Temple of Concord, and the
fireworks, and the Chinese bridge in St. James's Park, could any
sensible man suppose that peace wasn't really concluded, after we'd
actually sung Te Deum for it, sir? I ask you, William, could I
suppose that the Emperor of Austria was a damned traitor—a traitor,
and nothing more? I don't mince words—a double-faced infernal
traitor and schemer, who meant to have his son-in-law back all along.
And I say that the escape of Boney from Elba was a damned imposition
and plot, sir, in which half the powers of Europe were concerned, to
bring the funds down, and to ruin this country. That's why I'm here,
William. That's why my name's in the Gazette. Why, sir?—because I
trusted the Emperor of Russia and the Prince Regent. Look here. Look
at my papers. Look what the funds were on the 1st of March—what the
French fives were when I bought for the count. And what they're at
now. There was collusion, sir, or that villain never would have
escaped. Where was the English Commissioner who allowed him to get
away? He ought to be shot, sir —brought to a court-martial, and
shot, by Jove."
"We're going to hunt Boney out,
sir," Dobbin said, rather alarmed at the fury of the old man,
the veins of whose forehead began to swell, and who sate drumming his
papers with his clenched fist. "We are going to hunt him out,
sir—the Duke's in Belgium already, and we expect marching orders
every day."
"Give him no quarter. Bring back
the villain's head, sir. Shoot the coward down, sir," Sedley
roared. "I'd enlist myself, by—; but I'm a broken old
man—ruined by that damned scoundrel—and by a parcel of swindling
thieves in this country whom I made, sir, and who are rolling in
their carriages now," he added, with a break in his voice.
Dobbin was not a little affected by the
sight of this once kind old friend, crazed almost with misfortune and
raving with senile anger. Pity the fallen gentleman: you to whom
money and fair repute are the chiefest good; and so, surely, are they
in Vanity Fair.
"Yes," he continued, "there
are some vipers that you warm, and they sting you afterwards. There
are some beggars that you put on horseback, and they're the first to
ride you down. You know whom I mean, William Dobbin, my boy. I mean a
purse-proud villain in Russell Square, whom I knew without a
shilling, and whom I pray and hope to see a beggar as he was when I
befriended him."
"I have heard something of this,
sir, from my friend George," Dobbin said, anxious to come to his
point. "The quarrel between you and his father has cut him up a
great deal, sir. Indeed, I'm the bearer of a message from him."
"O, THAT'S your errand, is it?"
cried the old man, jumping up. "What! perhaps he condoles with
me, does he? Very kind of him, the stiff-backed prig, with his
dandified airs and West End swagger. He's hankering about my house,
is he still? If my son had the courage of a man, he'd shoot him. He's
as big a villain as his father. I won't have his name mentioned in my
house. I curse the day that ever I let him into it; and I'd rather
see my daughter dead at my feet than married to him."
"His father's harshness is not
George's fault, sir. Your daughter's love for him is as much your
doing as his. Who are you, that you are to play with two young
people's affections and break their hearts at your will?"
"Recollect it's not his father
that breaks the match off," old Sedley cried out. "It's I
that forbid it. That family and mine are separated for ever. I'm
fallen low, but not so low as that: no, no. And so you may tell the
whole race—son, and father and sisters, and all."
"It's my belief, sir, that you
have not the power or the right to separate those two," Dobbin
answered in a low voice; "and that if you don't give your
daughter your consent it will be her duty to marry without it.
There's no reason she should die or live miserably because you are
wrong-headed. To my thinking, she's just as much married as if the
banns had been read in all the churches in London. And what better
answer can there be to Osborne's charges against you, as charges
there are, than that his son claims to enter your family and marry
your daughter?"
A light of something like satisfaction
seemed to break over old Sedley as this point was put to him: but he
still persisted that with his consent the marriage between Amelia and
George should never take place.
"We must do it without,"
Dobbin said, smiling, and told Mr. Sedley, as he had told Mrs. Sedley
in the day, before, the story of Rebecca's elopement with Captain
Crawley. It evidently amused the old gentleman. "You're terrible
fellows, you Captains," said he, tying up his papers; and his
face wore something like a smile upon it, to the astonishment of the
blear-eyed waiter who now entered, and had never seen such an
expression upon Sedley's countenance since he had used the dismal
coffee-house.
The idea of hitting his enemy Osborne
such a blow soothed, perhaps, the old gentleman: and, their colloquy
presently ending, he and Dobbin parted pretty good friends.
"My sisters say she has diamonds
as big as pigeons' eggs," George said, laughing. "How they
must set off her complexion! A perfect illumination it must be when
her jewels are on her neck. Her jet- black hair is as curly as
Sambo's. I dare say she wore a nose ring when she went to court; and
with a plume of feathers in her top-knot she would look a perfect
Belle Sauvage."
George, in conversation with Amelia,
was rallying the appearance of a young lady of whom his father and
sisters had lately made the acquaintance, and who was an object of
vast respect to the Russell Square family. She was reported to have I
don't know how many plantations in the West Indies; a deal of money
in the funds; and three stars to her name in the East India
stockholders' list. She had a mansion in Surrey, and a house in
Portland Place. The name of the rich West India heiress had been
mentioned with applause in the Morning Post. Mrs. Haggistoun, Colonel
Haggistoun's widow, her relative, "chaperoned" her, and
kept her house. She was just from school, where she had completed her
education, and George and his sisters had met her at an evening party
at old Hulker's house, Devonshire Place (Hulker, Bullock, and Co.
were long the correspondents of her house in the West Indies), and
the girls had made the most cordial advances to her, which the
heiress had received with great good humour. An orphan in her
position—with her money—so interesting! the Misses Osborne said.
They were full of their new friend when they returned from the Hulker
ball to Miss Wirt, their companion; they had made arrangements for
continually meeting, and had the carriage and drove to see her the
very next day. Mrs. Haggistoun, Colonel Haggistoun's widow, a
relation of Lord Binkie, and always talking of him, struck the dear
unsophisticated girls as rather haughty, and too much inclined to
talk about her great relations: but Rhoda was everything they could
wish—the frankest, kindest, most agreeable creature—wanting a
little polish, but so good-natured. The girls Christian-named each
other at once.
"You should have seen her dress
for court, Emmy," Osborne cried, laughing. "She came to my
sisters to show it off, before she was presented in state by my Lady
Binkie, the Haggistoun's kinswoman. She's related to every one, that
Haggistoun. Her diamonds blazed out like Vauxhall on the night we
were there. (Do you remember Vauxhall, Emmy, and Jos singing to his
dearest diddle diddle darling?) Diamonds and mahogany, my dear! think
what an advantageous contrast—and the white feathers in her hair—I
mean in her wool. She had earrings like chandeliers; you might have
lighted 'em up, by Jove—and a yellow satin train that streeled
after her like the tail of a cornet."
"How old is she?" asked Emmy,
to whom George was rattling away regarding this dark paragon, on the
morning of their reunion— rattling away as no other man in the
world surely could.
"Why the Black Princess, though
she has only just left school, must be two or three and twenty. And
you should see the hand she writes! Mrs. Colonel Haggistoun usually
writes her letters, but in a moment of confidence, she put pen to
paper for my sisters; she spelt satin satting, and Saint James's,
Saint Jams."
"Why, surely it must be Miss
Swartz, the parlour boarder," Emmy said, remembering that
good-natured young mulatto girl, who had been so hysterically
affected when Amelia left Miss Pinkerton's academy.
"The very name," George said.
"Her father was a German Jew—a slave-owner they say—connected
with the Cannibal Islands in some way or other. He died last year,
and Miss Pinkerton has finished her education. She can play two
pieces on the piano; she knows three songs; she can write when Mrs.
Haggistoun is by to spell for her; and Jane and Maria already have
got to love her as a sister."
"I wish they would have loved me,"
said Emmy, wistfully. "They were always very cold to me."
"My dear child, they would have
loved you if you had had two hundred thousand pounds," George
replied. "That is the way in which they have been brought up.
Ours is a ready-money society. We live among bankers and City
big-wigs, and be hanged to them, and every man, as he talks to you,
is jingling his guineas in his pocket. There is that jackass Fred
Bullock is going to marry Maria—there's Goldmore, the East India
Director, there's Dipley, in the tallow trade—OUR trade,"
George said, with an uneasy laugh and a blush. "Curse the whole
pack of money-grubbing vulgarians! I fall asleep at their great heavy
dinners. I feel ashamed in my father's great stupid parties. I've
been accustomed to live with gentlemen, and men of the world and
fashion, Emmy, not with a parcel of turtle-fed tradesmen. Dear little
woman, you are the only person of our set who ever looked, or
thought, or spoke like a lady: and you do it because you're an angel
and can't help it. Don't remonstrate. You are the only lady. Didn't
Miss Crawley remark it, who has lived in the best company in Europe?
And as for Crawley, of the Life Guards, hang it, he's a fine fellow:
and I like him for marrying the girl he had chosen."
Amelia admired Mr. Crawley very much,
too, for this; and trusted Rebecca would be happy with him, and hoped
(with a laugh) Jos would be consoled. And so the pair went on
prattling, as in quite early days. Amelia's confidence being
perfectly restored to her, though she expressed a great deal of
pretty jealousy about Miss Swartz, and professed to be dreadfully
frightened—like a hypocrite as she was— lest George should forget
her for the heiress and her money and her estates in Saint Kitt's.
But the fact is, she was a great deal too happy to have fears or
doubts or misgivings of any sort: and having George at her side
again, was not afraid of any heiress or beauty, or indeed of any sort
of danger.
When Captain Dobbin came back in the
afternoon to these people— which he did with a great deal of
sympathy for them—it did his heart good to see how Amelia had grown
young again—how she laughed, and chirped, and sang familiar old
songs at the piano, which were only interrupted by the bell from
without proclaiming Mr. Sedley's return from the City, before whom
George received a signal to retreat.
Beyond the first smile of
recognition—and even that was an hypocrisy, for she thought his
arrival rather provoking—Miss Sedley did not once notice Dobbin
during his visit. But he was content, so that he saw her happy; and
thankful to have been the means of making her so.
Chapter XXI
*
A Quarrel About an Heiress
Love may be felt for any young lady
endowed with such qualities as Miss Swartz possessed; and a great
dream of ambition entered into old Mr. Osborne's soul, which she was
to realize. He encouraged, with the utmost enthusiasm and
friendliness, his daughters' amiable attachment to the young heiress,
and protested that it gave him the sincerest pleasure as a father to
see the love of his girls so well disposed.
"You won't find," he would
say to Miss Rhoda, "that splendour and rank to which you are
accustomed at the West End, my dear Miss, at our humble mansion in
Russell Square. My daughters are plain, disinterested girls, but
their hearts are in the right place, and they've conceived an
attachment for you which does them honour—I say, which does them
honour. I'm a plain, simple, humble British merchant—an honest one,
as my respected friends Hulker and Bullock will vouch, who were the
correspondents of your late lamented father. You'll find us a united,
simple, happy, and I think I may say respected, family—a plain
table, a plain people, but a warm welcome, my dear Miss Rhoda—Rhoda,
let me say, for my heart warms to you, it does really. I'm a frank
man, and I like you. A glass of Champagne! Hicks, Champagne to Miss
Swartz."
There is little doubt that old Osborne
believed all he said, and that the girls were quite earnest in their
protestations of affection for Miss Swartz. People in Vanity Fair
fasten on to rich folks quite naturally. If the simplest people are
disposed to look not a little kindly on great Prosperity (for I defy
any member of the British public to say that the notion of Wealth has
not something awful and pleasing to him; and you, if you are told
that the man next you at dinner has got half a million, not to look
at him with a certain interest)—if the simple look benevolently on
money, how much more do your old worldlings regard it! Their
affections rush out to meet and welcome money. Their kind sentiments
awaken spontaneously towards the interesting possessors of it. I know
some respectable people who don't consider themselves at liberty to
indulge in friendship for any individual who has not a certain
competency, or place in society. They give a loose to their feelings
on proper occasions. And the proof is, that the major part of the
Osborne family, who had not, in fifteen years, been able to get up a
hearty regard for Amelia Sedley, became as fond of Miss Swartz in the
course of a single evening as the most romantic advocate of
friendship at first sight could desire.
What a match for George she'd be (the
sisters and Miss Wirt agreed), and how much better than that
insignificant little Amelia! Such a dashing young fellow as he is,
with his good looks, rank, and accomplishments, would be the very
husband for her. Visions of balls in Portland Place, presentations at
Court, and introductions to half the peerage, filled the minds of the
young ladies; who talked of nothing but George and his grand
acquaintances to their beloved new friend.
Old Osborne thought she would be a
great match, too, for his son. He should leave the army; he should go
into Parliament; he should cut a figure in the fashion and in the
state. His blood boiled with honest British exultation, as he saw the
name of Osborne ennobled in the person of his son, and thought that
he might be the progenitor of a glorious line of baronets. He worked
in the City and on 'Change, until he knew everything relating to the
fortune of the heiress, how her money was placed, and where her
estates lay. Young Fred Bullock, one of his chief informants, would
have liked to make a bid for her himself (it was so the young banker
expressed it), only he was booked to Maria Osborne. But not being
able to secure her as a wife, the disinterested Fred quite approved
of her as a sister-in-law. "Let George cut in directly and win
her," was his advice. "Strike while the iron's hot, you
know—while she's fresh to the town: in a few weeks some d— fellow
from the West End will come in with a title and a rotten rent-roll
and cut all us City men out, as Lord Fitzrufus did last year with
Miss Grogram, who was actually engaged to Podder, of Podder &
Brown's. The sooner it is done the better, Mr. Osborne; them's my
sentiments," the wag said; though, when Osborne had left the
bank parlour, Mr. Bullock remembered Amelia, and what a pretty girl
she was, and how attached to George Osborne; and he gave up at least
ten seconds of his valuable time to regretting the misfortune which
had befallen that unlucky young woman.
While thus George Osborne's good
feelings, and his good friend and genius, Dobbin, were carrying back
the truant to Amelia's feet, George's parent and sisters were
arranging this splendid match for him, which they never dreamed he
would resist.
When the elder Osborne gave what he
called "a hint," there was no possibility for the most
obtuse to mistake his meaning. He called kicking a footman downstairs
a hint to the latter to leave his service. With his usual frankness
and delicacy he told Mrs. Haggistoun that he would give her a cheque
for five thousand pounds on the day his son was married to her ward;
and called that proposal a hint, and considered it a very dexterous
piece of diplomacy. He gave George finally such another hint
regarding the heiress; and ordered him to marry her out of hand, as
he would have ordered his butler to draw a cork, or his clerk to
write a letter.
This imperative hint disturbed George a
good deal. He was in the very first enthusiasm and delight of his
second courtship of Amelia, which was inexpressibly sweet to him. The
contrast of her manners and appearance with those of the heiress,
made the idea of a union with the latter appear doubly ludicrous and
odious. Carriages and opera-boxes, thought he; fancy being seen in
them by the side of such a mahogany charmer as that! Add to all that
the junior Osborne was quite as obstinate as the senior: when he
wanted a thing, quite as firm in his resolution to get it; and quite
as violent when angered, as his father in his most stern moments.
On the first day when his father
formally gave him the hint that he was to place his affections at
Miss Swartz's feet, George temporised with the old gentleman. "You
should have thought of the matter sooner, sir," he said. "It
can't be done now, when we're expecting every day to go on foreign
service. Wait till my return, if I do return"; and then he
represented, that the time when the regiment was daily expecting to
quit England, was exceedingly ill-chosen: that the few days or weeks
during which they were still to remain at home, must be devoted to
business and not to love-making: time enough for that when he came
home with his majority; "for, I promise you," said he, with
a satisfied air, "that one way or other you shall read the name
of George Osborne in the Gazette."
The father's reply to this was founded
upon the information which he had got in the City: that the West End
chaps would infallibly catch hold of the heiress if any delay took
place: that if he didn't marry Miss S., he might at least have an
engagement in writing, to come into effect when he returned to
England; and that a man who could get ten thousand a year by staying
at home, was a fool to risk his life abroad.
"So that you would have me shown
up as a coward, sir, and our name dishonoured for the sake of Miss
Swartz's money," George interposed.
This remark staggered the old
gentleman; but as he had to reply to it, and as his mind was
nevertheless made up, he said, "You will dine here to-morrow,
sir, and every day Miss Swartz comes, you will be here to pay your
respects to her. If you want for money, call upon Mr. Chopper."
Thus a new obstacle was in George's way, to interfere with his plans
regarding Amelia; and about which he and Dobbin had more than one
confidential consultation. His friend's opinion respecting the line
of conduct which he ought to pursue, we know already. And as for
Osborne, when he was once bent on a thing, a fresh obstacle or two
only rendered him the more resolute.
The dark object of the conspiracy into
which the chiefs of the Osborne family had entered, was quite
ignorant of all their plans regarding her (which, strange to say, her
friend and chaperon did not divulge), and, taking all the young
ladies' flattery for genuine sentiment, and being, as we have before
had occasion to show, of a very warm and impetuous nature, responded
to their affection with quite a tropical ardour. And if the truth may
be told, I dare say that she too had some selfish attraction in the
Russell Square house; and in a word, thought George Osborne a very
nice young man. His whiskers had made an impression upon her, on the
very first night she beheld them at the ball at Messrs. Hulkers; and,
as we know, she was not the first woman who had been charmed by them.
George had an air at once swaggering and melancholy, languid and
fierce. He looked like a man who had passions, secrets, and private
harrowing griefs and adventures. His voice was rich and deep. He
would say it was a warm evening, or ask his partner to take an ice,
with a tone as sad and confidential as if he were breaking her
mother's death to her, or preluding a declaration of love. He
trampled over all the young bucks of his father's circle, and was the
hero among those third-rate men. Some few sneered at him and hated
him. Some, like Dobbin, fanatically admired him. And his whiskers had
begun to do their work, and to curl themselves round the affections
of Miss Swartz.
Whenever there was a chance of meeting
him in Russell Square, that simple and good-natured young woman was
quite in a flurry to see her dear Misses Osborne. She went to great
expenses in new gowns, and bracelets, and bonnets, and in prodigious
feathers. She adorned her person with her utmost skill to please the
Conqueror, and exhibited all her simple accomplishments to win his
favour. The girls would ask her, with the greatest gravity, for a
little music, and she would sing her three songs and play her two
little pieces as often as ever they asked, and with an always
increasing pleasure to herself. During these delectable
entertainments, Miss Wirt and the chaperon sate by, and conned over
the peerage, and talked about the nobility.
The day after George had his hint from
his father, and a short time before the hour of dinner, he was
lolling upon a sofa in the drawing-room in a very becoming and
perfectly natural attitude of melancholy. He had been, at his
father's request, to Mr. Chopper in the City (the old-gentleman,
though he gave great sums to his son, would never specify any fixed
allowance for him, and rewarded him only as he was in the humour). He
had then been to pass three hours with Amelia, his dear little
Amelia, at Fulham; and he came home to find his sisters spread in
starched muslin in the drawing-room, the dowagers cackling in the
background, and honest Swartz in her favourite amber-coloured satin,
with turquoise bracelets, countless rings, flowers, feathers, and all
sorts of tags and gimcracks, about as elegantly decorated as a she
chimney-sweep on May-day.
The girls, after vain attempts to
engage him in conversation, talked about fashions and the last
drawing-room until he was perfectly sick of their chatter. He
contrasted their behaviour with little Emmy's —their shrill voices
with her tender ringing tones; their attitudes and their elbows and
their starch, with her humble soft movements and modest graces. Poor
Swartz was seated in a place where Emmy had been accustomed to sit.
Her bejewelled hands lay sprawling in her amber satin lap. Her tags
and ear-rings twinkled, and her big eyes rolled about. She was doing
nothing with perfect contentment, and thinking herself charming.
Anything so becoming as the satin the sisters had never seen.
"Dammy," George said to a
confidential friend, "she looked like a China doll, which has
nothing to do all day but to grin and wag its head. By Jove, Will, it
was all I I could do to prevent myself from throwing the sofa-cushion
at her." He restrained that exhibition of sentiment, however.
The sisters began to play the Battle of
Prague. "Stop that d— thing," George howled out in a fury
from the sofa. "It makes me mad. You play us something, Miss
Swartz, do. Sing something, anything but the Battle of Prague."
"Shall I sing 'Blue Eyed Mary' or
the air from the Cabinet?" Miss Swartz asked.
"That sweet thing from the
Cabinet," the sisters said.
"We've had that," replied the
misanthrope on the sofa
"I can sing 'Fluvy du Tajy,'"
Swartz said, in a meek voice, "if I had the words." It was
the last of the worthy young woman's collection.
"O, 'Fleuve du Tage,'" Miss
Maria cried; "we have the song," and went off to fetch the
book in which it was.
Now it happened that this song, then in
the height of the fashion, had been given to the young ladies by a
young friend of theirs, whose name was on the title, and Miss Swartz,
having concluded the ditty with George's applause (for he remembered
that it was a favourite of Amelia's), was hoping for an encore
perhaps, and fiddling with the leaves of the music, when her eye fell
upon the title, and she saw "Amelia Sedley" written in the
comer.
"Lor!" cried Miss Swartz,
spinning swiftly round on the music-stool, "is it my Amelia?
Amelia that was at Miss P.'s at Hammersmith? I know it is. It's her.
and—Tell me about her—where is she?"
"Don't mention her," Miss
Maria Osborne said hastily. "Her family has disgraced itself.
Her father cheated Papa, and as for her, she is never to be mentioned
HERE." This was Miss Maria's return for George's rudeness about
the Battle of Prague.
"Are you a friend of Amelia's?"
George said, bouncing up. "God bless you for it, Miss Swartz.
Don't believe what the girls say. SHE'S not to blame at any rate.
She's the best—"
"You know you're not to speak
about her, George," cried Jane. "Papa forbids it."
"Who's to prevent me?" George
cried out. "I will speak of her. I say she's the best, the
kindest, the gentlest, the sweetest girl in England; and that,
bankrupt or no, my sisters are not fit to hold candles to her. If you
like her, go and see her, Miss Swartz; she wants friends now; and I
say, God bless everybody who befriends her. Anybody who speaks kindly
of her is my friend; anybody who speaks against her is my enemy.
Thank you, Miss Swartz"; and he went up and wrung her hand.
"George! George!" one of the
sisters cried imploringly.
"I say," George said
fiercely, "I thank everybody who loves Amelia Sed—" He
stopped. Old Osborne was in the room with a face livid with rage, and
eyes like hot coals.
Though George had stopped in his
sentence, yet, his blood being up, he was not to be cowed by all the
generations of Osborne; rallying instantly, he replied to the
bullying look of his father, with another so indicative of resolution
and defiance that the elder man quailed in his turn, and looked away.
He felt that the tussle was coming. "Mrs. Haggistoun, let me
take you down to dinner," he said. "Give your arm to Miss
Swartz, George," and they marched.
"Miss Swartz, I love Amelia, and
we've been engaged almost all our lives," Osborne said to his
partner; and during all the dinner, George rattled on with a
volubility which surprised himself, and made his father doubly
nervous for the fight which was to take place as soon as the ladies
were gone.
The difference between the pair was,
that while the father was violent and a bully, the son had thrice the
nerve and courage of the parent, and could not merely make an attack,
but resist it; and finding that the moment was now come when the
contest between him and his father was to be decided, he took his
dinner with perfect coolness and appetite before the engagement
began. Old Osborne, on the contrary, was nervous, and drank much. He
floundered in his conversation with the ladies, his neighbours:
George's coolness only rendering him more angry. It made him half mad
to see the calm way in which George, flapping his napkin, and with a
swaggering bow, opened the door for the ladies to leave the room; and
filling himself a glass of wine, smacked it, and looked his father
full in the face, as if to say, "Gentlemen of the Guard, fire
first." The old man also took a supply of ammunition, but his
decanter clinked against the glass as he tried to fill it.
After giving a great heave, and with a
purple choking face, he then began. "How dare you, sir, mention
that person's name before Miss Swartz to-day, in my drawing-room? I
ask you, sir, how dare you do it?"
"Stop, sir," says George,
"don't say dare, sir. Dare isn't a word to be used to a Captain
in the British Army."
"I shall say what I like to my
son, sir. I can cut him off with a shilling if I like. I can make him
a beggar if I like. I WILL say what I like," the elder said.
"I'm a gentleman though I AM your
son, sir," George answered haughtily. "Any communications
which you have to make to me, or any orders which you may please to
give, I beg may be couched in that kind of language which I am
accustomed to hear."
Whenever the lad assumed his haughty
manner, it always created either great awe or great irritation in the
parent. Old Osborne stood in secret terror of his son as a better
gentleman than himself; and perhaps my readers may have remarked in
their experience of this Vanity Fair of ours, that there is no
character which a low-minded man so much mistrusts as that of a
gentleman.
"My father didn't give me the
education you have had, nor the advantages you have had, nor the
money you have had. If I had kept the company SOME FOLKS have had
through MY MEANS, perhaps my son wouldn't have any reason to brag,
sir, of his SUPERIORITY and WEST END AIRS (these words were uttered
in the elder Osborne's most sarcastic tones). But it wasn't
considered the part of a gentleman, in MY time, for a man to insult
his father. If I'd done any such thing, mine would have kicked me
downstairs, sir."
"I never insulted you, sir. I said
I begged you to remember your son was a gentleman as well as
yourself. I know very well that you give me plenty of money,"
said George (fingering a bundle of notes which he had got in the
morning from Mr. Chopper). "You tell it me often enough, sir.
There's no fear of my forgetting it."
"I wish you'd remember other
things as well, sir," the sire answered. "I wish you'd
remember that in this house—so long as you choose to HONOUR it with
your COMPANY, Captain—I'm the master, and that name, and that
that—that you—that I say—"
"That what, sir?" George
asked, with scarcely a sneer, filling another glass of claret.
"—-!" burst out his father
with a screaming oath—"that the name of those Sedleys never be
mentioned here, sir—not one of the whole damned lot of 'em, sir."
"It wasn't I, sir, that introduced
Miss Sedley's name. It was my sisters who spoke ill of her to Miss
Swartz; and by Jove I'll defend her wherever I go. Nobody shall speak
lightly of that name in my presence. Our family has done her quite
enough injury already, I think, and may leave off reviling her now
she's down. I'll shoot any man but you who says a word against her."
"Go on, sir, go on," the old
gentleman said, his eyes starting out of his head.
"Go on about what, sir? about the
way in which we've treated that angel of a girl? Who told me to love
her? It was your doing. I might have chosen elsewhere, and looked
higher, perhaps, than your society: but I obeyed you. And now that
her heart's mine you give me orders to fling it away, and punish her,
kill her perhaps—for the faults of other people. It's a shame, by
Heavens," said George, working himself up into passion and
enthusiasm as he proceeded, "to play at fast and loose with a
young girl's affections—and with such an angel as that—one so
superior to the people amongst whom she lived, that she might have
excited envy, only she was so good and gentle, that it's a wonder
anybody dared to hate her. If I desert her, sir, do you suppose she
forgets me?"
"I ain't going to have any of this
dam sentimental nonsense and humbug here, sir," the father cried
out. "There shall be no beggar- marriages in my family. If you
choose to fling away eight thousand a year, which you may have for
the asking, you may do it: but by Jove you take your pack and walk
out of this house, sir. Will you do as I tell you, once for all, sir,
or will you not?"
"Marry that mulatto woman?"
George said, pulling up his shirt- collars. "I don't like the
colour, sir. Ask the black that sweeps opposite Fleet Market, sir.
I'm not going to marry a Hottentot Venus."
Mr. Osborne pulled frantically at the
cord by which he was accustomed to summon the butler when he wanted
wine—and almost black in the face, ordered that functionary to call
a coach for Captain Osborne.
"I've done it," said George,
coming into the Slaughters' an hour afterwards, looking very pale.
"What, my boy?" says Dobbin.
George told what had passed between his
father and himself.
"I'll marry her to-morrow,"
he said with an oath. "I love her more every day, Dobbin."
Chapter XXII
*
A Marriage and Part of a Honeymoon
Enemies the most obstinate and
courageous can't hold out against starvation; so the elder Osborne
felt himself pretty easy about his adversary in the encounter we have
just described; and as soon as George's supplies fell short,
confidently expected his unconditional submission. It was unlucky, to
be sure, that the lad should have secured a stock of provisions on
the very day when the first encounter took place; but this relief was
only temporary, old Osborne thought, and would but delay George's
surrender. No communication passed between father and son for some
days. The former was sulky at this silence, but not disquieted; for,
as he said, he knew where he could put the screw upon George, and
only waited the result of that operation. He told the sisters the
upshot of the dispute between them, but ordered them to take no
notice of the matter, and welcome George on his return as if nothing
had happened. His cover was laid as usual every day, and perhaps the
old gentleman rather anxiously expected him; but he never came. Some
one inquired at the Slaughters' regarding him, where it was said that
he and his friend Captain Dobbin had left town.
One gusty, raw day at the end of
April—the rain whipping the pavement of that ancient street where
the old Slaughters' Coffee- house was once situated—George Osborne
came into the coffee-room, looking very haggard and pale; although
dressed rather smartly in a blue coat and brass buttons, and a neat
buff waistcoat of the fashion of those days. Here was his friend
Captain Dobbin, in blue and brass too, having abandoned the military
frock and French-grey trousers, which were the usual coverings of his
lanky person.
Dobbin had been in the coffee-room for
an hour or more. He had tried all the papers, but could not read
them. He had looked at the clock many scores of times; and at the
street, where the rain was pattering down, and the people as they
clinked by in pattens, left long reflections on the shining stone: he
tattooed at the table: he bit his nails most completely, and nearly
to the quick (he was accustomed to ornament his great big hands in
this way): he balanced the tea-spoon dexterously on the milk jug:
upset it, &c., &c.; and in fact showed those signs of
disquietude, and practised those desperate attempts at amusement,
which men are accustomed to employ when very anxious, and expectant,
and perturbed in mind.
Some of his comrades, gentlemen who
used the room, joked him about the splendour of his costume and his
agitation of manner. One asked him if he was going to be married?
Dobbin laughed, and said he would send his acquaintance (Major
Wagstaff of the Engineers) a piece of cake when that event took
place. At length Captain Osborne made his appearance, very smartly
dressed, but very pale and agitated as we have said. He wiped his
pale face with a large yellow bandanna pocket-handkerchief that was
prodigiously scented. He shook hands with Dobbin, looked at the
clock, and told John, the waiter, to bring him some curacao. Of this
cordial he swallowed off a couple of glasses with nervous eagerness.
His friend asked with some interest about his health.
"Couldn't get a wink of sleep till
daylight, Dob," said he. "Infernal headache and fever. Got
up at nine, and went down to the Hummums for a bath. I say, Dob, I
feel just as I did on the morning I went out with Rocket at Quebec."
"So do I," William responded.
"I was a deuced deal more nervous than you were that morning.
You made a famous breakfast, I remember. Eat something now."
"You're a good old fellow, Will.
I'll drink your health, old boy, and farewell to—"
"No, no; two glasses are enough,"
Dobbin interrupted him. "Here, take away the liqueurs, John.
Have some cayenne-pepper with your fowl. Make haste though, for it is
time we were there."
It was about half an hour from twelve
when this brief meeting and colloquy took place between the two
captains. A coach, into which Captain Osborne's servant put his
master's desk and dressing-case, had been in waiting for some time;
and into this the two gentlemen hurried under an umbrella, and the
valet mounted on the box, cursing the rain and the dampness of the
coachman who was steaming beside him. "We shall find a better
trap than this at the church-door," says he; "that's a
comfort." And the carriage drove on, taking the road down
Piccadilly, where Apsley House and St. George's Hospital wore red
jackets still; where there were oil-lamps; where Achilles was not yet
born; nor the Pimlico arch raised; nor the hideous equestrian monster
which pervades it and the neighbourhood; and so they drove down by
Brompton to a certain chapel near the Fulham Road there.
A chariot was in waiting with four
horses; likewise a coach of the kind called glass coaches. Only a
very few idlers were collected on account of the dismal rain.
"Hang it!" said George, "I
said only a pair."
"My master would have four,"
said Mr. Joseph Sedley's servant, who was in waiting; and he and Mr.
Osborne's man agreed as they followed George and William into the
church, that it was a "reg'lar shabby turn hout; and with scarce
so much as a breakfast or a wedding faviour."
"Here you are," said our old
friend, Jos Sedley, coming forward. "You're five minutes late,
George, my boy. What a day, eh? Demmy, it's like the commencement of
the rainy season in Bengal. But you'll find my carriage is
watertight. Come along, my mother and Emmy are in the vestry."
Jos Sedley was splendid. He was fatter
than ever. His shirt collars were higher; his face was redder; his
shirt-frill flaunted gorgeously out of his variegated waistcoat.
Varnished boots were not invented as yet; but the Hessians on his
beautiful legs shone so, that they must have been the identical pair
in which the gentleman in the old picture used to shave himself; and
on his light green coat there bloomed a fine wedding favour, like a
great white spreading magnolia.
In a word, George had thrown the great
cast. He was going to be married. Hence his pallor and
nervousness—his sleepless night and agitation in the morning. I
have heard people who have gone through the same thing own to the
same emotion. After three or four ceremonies, you get accustomed to
it, no doubt; but the first dip, everybody allows, is awful.
The bride was dressed in a brown silk
pelisse (as Captain Dobbin has since informed me), and wore a straw
bonnet with a pink ribbon; over the bonnet she had a veil of white
Chantilly lace, a gift from Mr. Joseph Sedley, her brother. Captain
Dobbin himself had asked leave to present her with a gold chain and
watch, which she sported on this occasion; and her mother gave her
her diamond brooch—almost the only trinket which was left to the
old lady. As the service went on, Mrs. Sedley sat and whimpered a
great deal in a pew, consoled by the Irish maid-servant and Mrs.
Clapp from the lodgings. Old Sedley would not be present. Jos acted
for his father, giving away the bride, whilst Captain Dobbin stepped
up as groomsman to his friend George.
There was nobody in the church besides
the officiating persons and the small marriage party and their
attendants. The two valets sat aloof superciliously. The rain came
rattling down on the windows. In the intervals of the service you
heard it, and the sobbing of old Mrs. Sedley in the pew. The parson's
tones echoed sadly through the empty walls. Osborne's "I will"
was sounded in very deep bass. Emmy's response came fluttering up to
her lips from her heart, but was scarcely heard by anybody except
Captain Dobbin.
When the service was completed, Jos
Sedley came forward and kissed his sister, the bride, for the first
time for many months—George's look of gloom had gone, and he seemed
quite proud and radiant. "It's your turn, William," says
he, putting his hand fondly upon Dobbin's shoulder; and Dobbin went
up and touched Amelia on the cheek.
Then they went into the vestry and
signed the register. "God bless you, Old Dobbin," George
said, grasping him by the hand, with something very like moisture
glistening in his eyes. William replied only by nodding his head. His
heart was too full to say much.
"Write directly, and come down as
soon as you can, you know," Osborne said. After Mrs. Sedley had
taken an hysterical adieu of her daughter, the pair went off to the
carriage. "Get out of the way, you little devils," George
cried to a small crowd of damp urchins, that were hanging about the
chapel-door. The rain drove into the bride and bridegroom's faces as
they passed to the chariot. The postilions' favours draggled on their
dripping jackets. The few children made a dismal cheer, as the
carriage, splashing mud, drove away.
William Dobbin stood in the
church-porch, looking at it, a queer figure. The small crew of
spectators jeered him. He was not thinking about them or their
laughter.
"Come home and have some tiffin,
Dobbin," a voice cried behind him; as a pudgy hand was laid on
his shoulder, and the honest fellow's reverie was interrupted. But
the Captain had no heart to go a- feasting with Jos Sedley. He put
the weeping old lady and her attendants into the carriage along with
Jos, and left them without any farther words passing. This carriage,
too, drove away, and the urchins gave another sarcastical cheer.
"Here, you little beggars,"
Dobbin said, giving some sixpences amongst them, and then went off by
himself through the rain. It was all over. They were married, and
happy, he prayed God. Never since he was a boy had he felt so
miserable and so lonely. He longed with a heart-sick yearning for the
first few days to be over, that he might see her again.
Some ten days after the above ceremony,
three young men of our acquaintance were enjoying that beautiful
prospect of bow windows on the one side and blue sea on the other,
which Brighton affords to the traveller. Sometimes it is towards the
ocean—smiling with countless dimples, speckled with white sails,
with a hundred bathing-machines kissing the skirt of his blue
garment—that the Londoner looks enraptured: sometimes, on the
contrary, a lover of human nature rather than of prospects of any
kind, it is towards the bow windows that he turns, and that swarm of
human life which they exhibit. From one issue the notes of a piano,
which a young lady in ringlets practises six hours daily, to the
delight of the fellow- lodgers: at another, lovely Polly, the
nurse-maid, may be seen dandling Master Omnium in her arms: whilst
Jacob, his papa, is beheld eating prawns, and devouring the Times for
breakfast, at the window below. Yonder are the Misses Leery, who are
looking out for the young officers of the Heavies, who are pretty
sure to be pacing the cliff; or again it is a City man, with a
nautical turn, and a telescope, the size of a six-pounder, who has
his instrument pointed seawards, so as to command every
pleasure-boat, herring-boat, or bathing-machine that comes to, or
quits, the shore, &c., &c. But have we any leisure for a
description of Brighton?—for Brighton, a clean Naples with genteel
lazzaroni—for Brighton, that always looks brisk, gay, and gaudy,
like a harlequin's jacket—for Brighton, which used to be seven
hours distant from London at the time of our story; which is now only
a hundred minutes off; and which may approach who knows how much
nearer, unless Joinville comes and untimely bombards it?
"What a monstrous fine girl that
is in the lodgings over the milliner's," one of these three
promenaders remarked to the other; "Gad, Crawley, did you see
what a wink she gave me as I passed?"
"Don't break her heart, Jos, you
rascal," said another. "Don't trifle with her affections,
you Don Juan!"
"Get away," said Jos Sedley,
quite pleased, and leering up at the maid-servant in question with a
most killing ogle. Jos was even more splendid at Brighton than he had
been at his sister's marriage. He had brilliant under-waistcoats, any
one of which would have set up a moderate buck. He sported a military
frock-coat, ornamented with frogs, knobs, black buttons, and
meandering embroidery. He had affected a military appearance and
habits of late; and he walked with his two friends, who were of that
profession, clinking his boot-spurs, swaggering prodigiously, and
shooting death-glances at all the servant girls who were worthy to be
slain.
"What shall we do, boys, till the
ladies return?" the buck asked. The ladies were out to
Rottingdean in his carriage on a drive.
"Let's have a game at billiards,"
one of his friends said—the tall one, with lacquered mustachios.
"No, dammy; no, Captain," Jos
replied, rather alarmed. "No billiards to-day, Crawley, my boy;
yesterday was enough."
"You play very well," said
Crawley, laughing. "Don't he, Osborne? How well he made
that-five stroke, eh?"
"Famous," Osborne said. "Jos
is a devil of a fellow at billiards, and at everything else, too. I
wish there were any tiger-hunting about here! we might go and kill a
few before dinner. (There goes a fine girl! what an ankle, eh, Jos?)
Tell us that story about the tiger-hunt, and the way you did for him
in the jungle—it's a wonderful story that, Crawley." Here
George Osborne gave a yawn. "It's rather slow work," said
he, "down here; what shall we do?"
"Shall we go and look at some
horses that Snaffler's just brought from Lewes fair?" Crawley
said.
"Suppose we go and have some
jellies at Dutton's," and the rogue Jos, willing to kill two
birds with one stone. "Devilish fine gal at Dutton's."
"Suppose we go and see the
Lightning come in, it's just about time?" George said. This
advice prevailing over the stables and the jelly, they turned towards
the coach-office to witness the Lightning's arrival.
As they passed, they met the
carriage—Jos Sedley's open carriage, with its magnificent armorial
bearings—that splendid conveyance in which he used to drive, about
at Cheltonham, majestic and solitary, with his arms folded, and his
hat cocked; or, more happy, with ladies by his side.
Two were in the carriage now: one a
little person, with light hair, and dressed in the height of the
fashion; the other in a brown silk pelisse, and a straw bonnet with
pink ribbons, with a rosy, round, happy face, that did you good to
behold. She checked the carriage as it neared the three gentlemen,
after which exercise of authority she looked rather nervous, and then
began to blush most absurdly. "We have had a delightful drive,
George," she said, "and—and we're so glad to come back;
and, Joseph, don't let him be late."
"Don't be leading our husbands
into mischief, Mr. Sedley, you wicked, wicked man you," Rebecca
said, shaking at Jos a pretty little finger covered with the neatest
French kid glove. "No billiards, no smoking, no naughtiness!"
"My dear Mrs. Crawley—Ah now!
upon my honour!" was all Jos could ejaculate by way of reply;
but he managed to fall into a tolerable attitude, with his head lying
on his shoulder, grinning upwards at his victim, with one hand at his
back, which he supported on his cane, and the other hand (the one
with the diamond ring) fumbling in his shirt-frill and among his
under-waistcoats. As the carriage drove off he kissed the diamond
hand to the fair ladies within. He wished all Cheltenham, all
Chowringhee, all Calcutta, could see him in that position, waving his
hand to such a beauty, and in company with such a famous buck as
Rawdon Crawley of the Guards.
Our young bride and bridegroom had
chosen Brighton as the place where they would pass the first few days
after their marriage; and having engaged apartments at the Ship Inn,
enjoyed themselves there in great comfort and quietude, until Jos
presently joined them. Nor was he the only companion they found
there. As they were coming into the hotel from a sea-side walk one
afternoon, on whom should they light but Rebecca and her husband. The
recognition was immediate. Rebecca flew into the arms of her dearest
friend. Crawley and Osborne shook hands together cordially enough:
and Becky, in the course of a very few hours, found means to make the
latter forget that little unpleasant passage of words which had
happened between them. "Do you remember the last time we met at
Miss Crawley's, when I was so rude to you, dear Captain Osborne? I
thought you seemed careless about dear Amelia. It was that made me
angry: and so pert: and so unkind: and so ungrateful. Do forgive me!"
Rebecca said, and she held out her hand with so frank and winning a
grace, that Osborne could not but take it. By humbly and frankly
acknowledging yourself to be in the wrong, there is no knowing, my
son, what good you may do. I knew once a gentleman and very worthy
practitioner in Vanity Fair, who used to do little wrongs to his
neighbours on purpose, and in order to apologise for them in an open
and manly way afterwards—and what ensued? My friend Crocky Doyle
was liked everywhere, and deemed to be rather impetuous—but the
honestest fellow. Becky's humility passed for sincerity with George
Osborne.
These two young couples had plenty of
tales to relate to each other. The marriages of either were
discussed; and their prospects in life canvassed with the greatest
frankness and interest on both sides. George's marriage was to be
made known to his father by his friend Captain Dobbin; and young
Osborne trembled rather for the result of that communication. Miss
Crawley, on whom all Rawdon's hopes depended, still held out. Unable
to make an entry into her house in Park Lane, her affectionate nephew
and niece had followed her to Brighton, where they had emissaries
continually planted at her door.
"I wish you could see some of
Rawdon's friends who are always about our door," Rebecca said,
laughing. "Did you ever see a dun, my dear; or a bailiff and his
man? Two of the abominable wretches watched all last week at the
greengrocer's opposite, and we could not get away until Sunday. If
Aunty does not relent, what shall we do?"
Rawdon, with roars of laughter, related
a dozen amusing anecdotes of his duns, and Rebecca's adroit treatment
of them. He vowed with a great oath that there was no woman in Europe
who could talk a creditor over as she could. Almost immediately after
their marriage, her practice had begun, and her husband found the
immense value of such a wife. They had credit in plenty, but they had
bills also in abundance, and laboured under a scarcity of ready
money. Did these debt-difficulties affect Rawdon's good spirits? No.
Everybody in Vanity Fair must have remarked how well those live who
are comfortably and thoroughly in debt: how they deny themselves
nothing; how jolly and easy they are in their minds. Rawdon and his
wife had the very best apartments at the inn at Brighton; the
landlord, as he brought in the first dish, bowed before them as to
his greatest customers: and Rawdon abused the dinners and wine with
an audacity which no grandee in the land could surpass. Long custom,
a manly appearance, faultless boots and clothes, and a happy
fierceness of manner, will often help a man as much as a great
balance at the banker's.
The two wedding parties met constantly
in each other's apartments. After two or three nights the gentlemen
of an evening had a little piquet, as their wives sate and chatted
apart. This pastime, and the arrival of Jos Sedley, who made his
appearance in his grand open carriage, and who played a few games at
billiards with Captain Crawley, replenished Rawdon's purse somewhat,
and gave him the benefit of that ready money for which the greatest
spirits are sometimes at a stand-still.
So the three gentlemen walked down to
see the Lightning coach come in. Punctual to the minute, the coach
crowded inside and out, the guard blowing his accustomed tune on the
horn—the Lightning came tearing down the street, and pulled up at
the coach-office.
"Hullo! there's old Dobbin,"
George cried, quite delighted to see his old friend perched on the
roof; and whose promised visit to Brighton had been delayed until
now. "How are you, old fellow? Glad you're come down. Emmy'll be
delighted to see you," Osborne said, shaking his comrade warmly
by the hand as soon as his descent from the vehicle was effected—and
then he added, in a lower and agitated voice, "What's the news?
Have you been in Russell Square? What does the governor say? Tell me
everything."
Dobbin looked very pale and grave.
"I've seen your father," said he. "How's Amelia—Mrs.
George? I'll tell you all the news presently: but I've brought the
great news of all: and that is—"
"Out with it, old fellow,"
George said.
"We're ordered to Belgium. All the
army goes—guards and all. Heavytop's got the gout, and is mad at
not being able to move. O'Dowd goes in command, and we embark from
Chatham next week." This news of war could not but come with a
shock upon our lovers, and caused all these gentlemen to look very
serious.
Chapter XXIII
*
Captain Dobbin Proceeds on His Canvass
What is the secret mesmerism which
friendship possesses, and under the operation of which a person
ordinarily sluggish, or cold, or timid, becomes wise, active, and
resolute, in another's behalf? As Alexis, after a few passes from Dr.
Elliotson, despises pain, reads with the back of his head, sees miles
off, looks into next week, and performs other wonders, of which, in
his own private normal condition, he is quite incapable; so you see,
in the affairs of the world and under the magnetism of friendships,
the modest man becomes bold, the shy confident, the lazy active, or
the impetuous prudent and peaceful. What is it, on the other hand,
that makes the lawyer eschew his own cause, and call in his learned
brother as an adviser? And what causes the doctor, when ailing, to
send for his rival, and not sit down and examine his own tongue in
the chimney Bass, or write his own prescription at his study-table? I
throw out these queries for intelligent readers to answer, who know,
at once, how credulous we are, and how sceptical, how soft and how
obstinate, how firm for others and how diffident about ourselves:
meanwhile, it is certain that our friend William Dobbin, who was
personally of so complying a disposition that if his parents had
pressed him much, it is probable he would have stepped down into the
kitchen and married the cook, and who, to further his own interests,
would have found the most insuperable difficulty in walking across
the street, found himself as busy and eager in the conduct of George
Osborne's affairs, as the most selfish tactician could be in the
pursuit of his own.
Whilst our friend George and his young
wife were enjoying the first blushing days of the honeymoon at
Brighton, honest William was left as George's plenipotentiary in
London, to transact all the business part of the marriage. His duty
it was to call upon old Sedley and his wife, and to keep the former
in good humour: to draw Jos and his brother-in-law nearer together,
so that Jos's position and dignity, as collector of Boggley Wollah,
might compensate for his father's loss of station, and tend to
reconcile old Osborne to the alliance: and finally, to communicate it
to the latter in such a way as should least irritate the old
gentleman.
Now, before he faced the head of the
Osborne house with the news which it was his duty to tell, Dobbin
bethought him that it would be politic to make friends of the rest of
the family, and, if possible, have the ladies on his side. They can't
be angry in their hearts, thought he. No woman ever was really angry
at a romantic marriage. A little crying out, and they must come round
to their brother; when the three of us will lay siege to old Mr.
Osborne. So this Machiavellian captain of infantry cast about him for
some happy means or stratagem by which he could gently and gradually
bring the Misses Osborne to a knowledge of their brother's secret.
By a little inquiry regarding his
mother's engagements, he was pretty soon able to find out by whom of
her ladyship's friends parties were given at that season; where he
would be likely to meet Osborne's sisters; and, though he had that
abhorrence of routs and evening parties which many sensible men,
alas! entertain, he soon found one where the Misses Osborne were to
be present. Making his appearance at the ball, where he danced a
couple of sets with both of them, and was prodigiously polite, he
actually had the courage to ask Miss Osborne for a few minutes'
conversation at an early hour the next day, when he had, he said, to
communicate to her news of the very greatest interest.
What was it that made her start back,
and gaze upon him for a moment, and then on the ground at her feet,
and make as if she would faint on his arm, had he not by opportunely
treading on her toes, brought the young lady back to self-control?
Why was she so violently agitated at Dobbin's request? This can never
be known. But when he came the next day, Maria was not in the
drawing-room with her sister, and Miss Wirt went off for the purpose
of fetching the latter, and the Captain and Miss Osborne were left
together. They were both so silent that the ticktock of the Sacrifice
of Iphigenia clock on the mantelpiece became quite rudely audible.
"What a nice party it was last
night," Miss Osborne at length began, encouragingly; "and—and
how you're improved in your dancing, Captain Dobbin. Surely somebody
has taught you," she added, with amiable archness.
"You should see me dance a reel
with Mrs. Major O'Dowd of ours; and a jig—did you ever see a jig?
But I think anybody could dance with you, Miss Osborne, who dance so
well."
"Is the Major's lady young and
beautiful, Captain?" the fair questioner continued. "Ah,
what a terrible thing it must be to be a soldier's wife! I wonder
they have any spirits to dance, and in these dreadful times of war,
too! O Captain Dobbin, I tremble sometimes when I think of our
dearest George, and the dangers of the poor soldier. Are there many
married officers of the —th, Captain Dobbin?"
"Upon my word, she's playing her
hand rather too openly," Miss Wirt thought; but this observation
is merely parenthetic, and was not heard through the crevice of the
door at which the governess uttered it.
"One of our young men is just
married," Dobbin said, now coming to the point. "It was a
very old attachment, and the young couple are as poor as church
mice." "O, how delightful! O, how romantic!" Miss
Osborne cried, as the Captain said "old attachment" and
"poor." Her sympathy encouraged him.
"The finest young fellow in the
regiment," he continued. "Not a braver or handsomer officer
in the army; and such a charming wife! How you would like her! how
you will like her when you know her, Miss Osborne." The young
lady thought the actual moment had arrived, and that Dobbin's
nervousness which now came on and was visible in many twitchings of
his face, in his manner of beating the ground with his great feet, in
the rapid buttoning and unbuttoning of his frock-coat, &c.—Miss
Osborne, I say, thought that when he had given himself a little air,
he would unbosom himself entirely, and prepared eagerly to listen.
And the clock, in the altar on which Iphigenia was situated,
beginning, after a preparatory convulsion, to toll twelve, the mere
tolling seemed as if it would last until one—so prolonged was the
knell to the anxious spinster.
"But it's not about marriage that
I came to speak—that is that marriage—that is—no, I mean—my
dear Miss Osborne, it's about our dear friend George," Dobbin
said.
"About George?" she said in a
tone so discomfited that Maria and Miss Wirt laughed at the other
side of the door, and even that abandoned wretch of a Dobbin felt
inclined to smile himself; for he was not altogether unconscious of
the state of affairs: George having often bantered him gracefully and
said, "Hang it, Will, why don't you take old Jane? She'll have
you if you ask her. I'll bet you five to two she will."
"Yes, about George, then," he
continued. "There has been a difference between him and Mr.
Osborne. And I regard him so much— for you know we have been like
brothers—that I hope and pray the quarrel may be settled. We must
go abroad, Miss Osborne. We may be ordered off at a day's warning.
Who knows what may happen in the campaign? Don't be agitated, dear
Miss Osborne; and those two at least should part friends."
"There has been no quarrel,
Captain Dobbin, except a little usual scene with Papa," the lady
said. "We are expecting George back daily. What Papa wanted was
only for his good. He has but to come back, and I'm sure all will be
well; and dear Rhoda, who went away from here in sad sad anger, I
know will forgive him. Woman forgives but too readily, Captain."
"Such an angel as YOU I am sure
would," Mr. Dobbin said, with atrocious astuteness. "And no
man can pardon himself for giving a woman pain. What would you feel,
if a man were faithless to you?"
"I should perish—I should throw
myself out of window—I should take poison—I should pine and die.
I know I should," Miss cried, who had nevertheless gone through
one or two affairs of the heart without any idea of suicide.
"And there are others,"
Dobbin continued, "as true and as kind- hearted as yourself. I'm
not speaking about the West Indian heiress, Miss Osborne, but about a
poor girl whom George once loved, and who was bred from her childhood
to think of nobody but him. I've seen her in her poverty
uncomplaining, broken-hearted, without a fault. It is of Miss Sedley
I speak. Dear Miss Osborne, can your generous heart quarrel with your
brother for being faithful to her? Could his own conscience ever
forgive him if he deserted her? Be her friend—she always loved
you—and—and I am come here charged by George to tell you that he
holds his engagement to her as the most sacred duty he has; and to
entreat you, at least, to be on his side."
When any strong emotion took possession
of Mr. Dobbin, and after the first word or two of hesitation, he
could speak with perfect fluency, and it was evident that his
eloquence on this occasion made some impression upon the lady whom he
addressed.
"Well," said she, "this
is—most surprising—most painful—most extraordinary—what will
Papa say?—that George should fling away such a superb establishment
as was offered to him but at any rate he has found a very brave
champion in you, Captain Dobbin. It is of no use, however," she
continued, after a pause; "I feel for poor Miss Sedley, most
certainly—most sincerely, you know. We never thought the match a
good one, though we were always very kind to her here— very. But
Papa will never consent, I am sure. And a well brought up young
woman, you know—with a well-regulated mind, must—George must give
her up, dear Captain Dobbin, indeed he must."
"Ought a man to give up the woman
he loved, just when misfortune befell her?" Dobbin said, holding
out his hand. "Dear Miss Osborne, is this the counsel I hear
from you? My dear young lady! you must befriend her. He can't give
her up. He must not give her up. Would a man, think you, give YOU up
if you were poor?"
This adroit question touched the heart
of Miss Jane Osborne not a little. "I don't know whether we poor
girls ought to believe what you men say, Captain," she said.
"There is that in woman's tenderness which induces her to
believe too easily. I'm afraid you are cruel, cruel deceivers,"—and
Dobbin certainly thought he felt a pressure of the hand which Miss
Osborne had extended to him.
He dropped it in some alarm.
"Deceivers!" said he. "No, dear Miss Osborne, all men
are not; your brother is not; George has loved Amelia Sedley ever
since they were children; no wealth would make him marry any but her.
Ought he to forsake her? Would you counsel him to do so?"
What could Miss Jane say to such a
question, and with her own peculiar views? She could not answer it,
so she parried it by saying, "Well, if you are not a deceiver,
at least you are very romantic"; and Captain William let this
observation pass without challenge.
At length when, by the help of farther
polite speeches, he deemed that Miss Osborne was sufficiently
prepared to receive the whole news, he poured it into her ear.
"George could not give up Amelia— George was married to
her"—and then he related the circumstances of the marriage as
we know them already: how the poor girl would have died had not her
lover kept his faith: how Old Sedley had refused all consent to the
match, and a licence had been got: and Jos Sedley had come from
Cheltenham to give away the bride: how they had gone to Brighton in
Jos's chariot-and-four to pass the honeymoon: and how George counted
on his dear kind sisters to befriend him with their father, as
women—so true and tender as they were—assuredly would do. And so,
asking permission (readily granted) to see her again, and rightly
conjecturing that the news he had brought would be told in the next
five minutes to the other ladies, Captain Dobbin made his bow and
took his leave.
He was scarcely out of the house, when
Miss Maria and Miss Wirt rushed in to Miss Osborne, and the whole
wonderful secret was imparted to them by that lady. To do them
justice, neither of the sisters was very much displeased. There is
something about a runaway match with which few ladies can be
seriously angry, and Amelia rather rose in their estimation, from the
spirit which she had displayed in consenting to the union. As they
debated the story, and prattled about it, and wondered what Papa
would do and say, came a loud knock, as of an avenging thunder-clap,
at the door, which made these conspirators start. It must be Papa,
they thought. But it was not he. It was only Mr. Frederick Bullock,
who had come from the City according to appointment, to conduct the
ladies to a flower-show.
This gentleman, as may be imagined, was
not kept long in ignorance of the secret. But his face, when he heard
it, showed an amazement which was very different to that look of
sentimental wonder which the countenances of the sisters wore. Mr.
Bullock was a man of the world, and a junior partner of a wealthy
firm. He knew what money was, and the value of it: and a delightful
throb of expectation lighted up his little eyes, and caused him to
smile on his Maria, as he thought that by this piece of folly of Mr.
George's she might be worth thirty thousand pounds more than he had
ever hoped to get with her.
"Gad! Jane," said he,
surveying even the elder sister with some interest, "Eels will
be sorry he cried off. You may be a fifty thousand pounder yet."
The sisters had never thought of the
money question up to that moment, but Fred Bullock bantered them with
graceful gaiety about it during their forenoon's excursion; and they
had risen not a little in their own esteem by the time when, the
morning amusement over, they drove back to dinner. And do not let my
respected reader exclaim against this selfishness as unnatural. It
was but this present morning, as he rode on the omnibus from
Richmond; while it changed horses, this present chronicler, being on
the roof, marked three little children playing in a puddle below,
very dirty, and friendly, and happy. To these three presently came
another little one. "POLLY," says she, "YOUR SISTER'S
GOT A PENNY." At which the children got up from the puddle
instantly, and ran off to pay their court to Peggy. And as the
omnibus drove off I saw Peggy with the infantine procession at her
tail, marching with great dignity towards the stall of a neighbouring
lollipop-woman.
No comments:
Post a Comment